Quotations.ch
  Directory : Bealby; A Holiday
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of Bealby; A Holiday, by H. G. Wells
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
  • most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
  • whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
  • of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
  • www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you'll
  • have to check the laws of the country where you are located before using
  • this ebook.
  • Title: Bealby; A Holiday
  • Author: H. G. Wells
  • Release Date: June 16, 2019 [EBook #59769]
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: UTF-8
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BEALBY; A HOLIDAY ***
  • Produced by Richard Tonsing and the Online Distributed
  • Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
  • produced from images generously made available by The
  • Internet Archive)
  • BEALBY
  • A HOLIDAY
  • BY
  • H. G. WELLS
  • AUTHOR OF “THE WIFE OF SIR ISAAC HARMAN,” ETC.
  • New York
  • THE MACMILLAN COMPANY
  • 1915
  • _All rights reserved_
  • COPYRIGHT, 1914, BY P. F. COLLIER & SON.
  • COPYRIGHT, 1915,
  • BY H. G. WELLS.
  • Set up and electrotyped. Published March, 1915.
  • Reprinted March, 1915. April, 1915. May, 1915. July, 1915. August, 1915.
  • ------------------------------------------------------------------------
  • CONTENTS
  • CHAPTER PAGE
  • I. YOUNG BEALBY GOES TO SHONTS 1
  • II. A WEEK-END AT SHONTS 22
  • III. THE WANDERERS 56
  • IV. THE UNOBTRUSIVE PARTING 95
  • V. THE SEEKING OF BEALBY 131
  • VI. BEALBY AND THE TRAMP 190
  • VII. THE BATTLE OF CRAYMINSTER 226
  • VIII. HOW BEALBY EXPLAINED 263
  • BEALBY
  • CHAPTER I
  • YOUNG BEALBY GOES TO SHONTS
  • § 1
  • The cat is the offspring of a cat and the dog of a dog, but butlers and
  • lady’s maids do not reproduce their kind. They have other duties.
  • So their successors have to be sought among the prolific, and
  • particularly among the prolific on great estates. Such are gardeners,
  • but not under-gardeners, gamekeepers, and coachmen—but not lodge people,
  • because their years are too great and their lodges too small. And among
  • those to whom this opportunity of entering service came was young
  • Bealby, who was the stepson of Mr. Darling, the gardener of Shonts.
  • Everyone knows the glories of Shonts. Its façade. Its two towers. The
  • great marble pond. The terraces where the peacocks walk and the lower
  • lake with the black and white swans. The great park and the avenue. The
  • view of the river winding away across the blue country. And of the
  • Shonts Velasquez—but that is now in America. And the Shonts Rubens,
  • which is in the National Gallery. And the Shonts porcelain. And the
  • Shonts past history; it was a refuge for the old faith; it had priest’s
  • holes and secret passages. And how at last the Marquis had to let Shonts
  • to the Laxtons—the Peptonized Milk and Baby Soother people—for a long
  • term of years. It was a splendid chance for any boy to begin his
  • knowledge of service in so great an establishment, and only the natural
  • perversity of human nature can explain the violent objection young
  • Bealby took to anything of the sort. He did. He said he did not want to
  • be a servant, and that he would not go and be a good boy and try his
  • very best in that state of life to which it had pleased God to call him
  • at Shonts. On the contrary.
  • He communicated these views suddenly to his mother as she was preparing
  • a steak and kidney pie in the bright little kitchen of the gardener’s
  • cottage. He came in with his hair all ruffled and his face hot and
  • distinctly dirty, and his hands in his trousers pockets in the way he
  • had been repeatedly told not to.
  • “Mother,” he said, “I’m not going to be a steward’s boy at the house
  • anyhow, not if you tell me to, not till you’re blue in the face. So
  • that’s all about it.”
  • This delivered, he remained panting, having no further breath left in
  • him.
  • His mother was a thin firm woman. She paused in her rolling of the dough
  • until he had finished, and then she made a strong broadening sweep of
  • the rolling pin, and remained facing him, leaning forward on that
  • implement with her head a little on one side.
  • “You will do,” she said, “whatsoever your father has said you will do.”
  • “’E isn’t my father,” said young Bealby.
  • His mother gave a snapping nod of the head expressive of extreme
  • determination.
  • “Anyhow I ain’t going to do it,” said young Bealby, and feeling the
  • conversation was difficult to sustain he moved towards the staircase
  • door with a view to slamming it.
  • “You’ll do it,” said his mother, “right enough.”
  • “You see whether I do,” said young Bealby, and then got in his door-slam
  • rather hurriedly because of steps outside.
  • Mr. Darling came in out of the sunshine a few moments later. He was a
  • large, many-pocketed, earthy-whiskered man with a clean-shaven
  • determined mouth, and he carried a large pale cucumber in his hand.
  • “I tole him,” he said.
  • “What did he say?” asked his wife.
  • “Nuthin’,” said Mr. Darling.
  • “’E says ’e won’t,” said Mrs. Darling.
  • Mr. Darling regarded her thoughtfully for a moment.
  • “I never see such a boy,” said Mr. Darling. “Why—’e’s _got_ to.”
  • § 2
  • But young Bealby maintained an obstinate fight against the inevitable.
  • He had no gift of lucid exposition. “I ain’t going to be a servant,” he
  • said. “I don’t see what right people have making a servant of me.”
  • “You got to be something,” said Mr. Darling.
  • “Everybody’s got to be something,” said Mrs. Darling.
  • “Then let me be something else,” said young Bealby.
  • “_I_ dessay you’d like to be a gentleman,” said Mr. Darling.
  • “I wouldn’t mind,” said young Bealby.
  • “You got to be what your opportunities give you,” said Mr. Darling.
  • Young Bealby became breathless. “Why shouldn’t I be an engine driver?”
  • he asked.
  • “All oily,” said his mother. “And getting yourself killed in an
  • accident. And got to pay fines. You’d _like_ to be an engine driver.”
  • “Or a soldier.”
  • “Oo!—a Swaddy!” said Mr. Darling decisively.
  • “Or the sea.”
  • “With that weak stummik of yours,” said Mrs. Darling.
  • “Besides which,” said Mr. Darling, “it’s been arranged for you to go up
  • to the ’ouse the very first of next month. And your box and everything
  • ready.”
  • Young Bealby became very red in the face. “I won’t go,” he said very
  • faintly.
  • “You will,” said Mr. Darling, “if I ’ave to take you by the collar and
  • the slack of your breeches to get you there.”
  • § 3
  • The heart of young Bealby was a coal of fire within his breast
  • as—unassisted—he went across the dewy park up to the great house,
  • whither his box was to follow him.
  • He thought the world a “rotten show.”
  • He also said, apparently to two does and a fawn, “If you think I’m going
  • to stand it, you know, you’re JOLLY-well mistaken.”
  • I do not attempt to justify his prejudice against honourable usefulness
  • in a domestic capacity. He had it. Perhaps there is something in the air
  • of Highbury, where he had spent the past eight years of his life, that
  • leads to democratic ideals. It is one of those new places where estates
  • seem almost forgotten. Perhaps too there was something in the Bealby
  • strain....
  • I think he would have objected to any employment at all. Hitherto he had
  • been a remarkably free boy with a considerable gusto about his freedom.
  • Why should that end? The little village mixed school had been a soft job
  • for his Cockney wits, and for a year and a half he had been top boy. Why
  • not go on being top boy?
  • Instead of which, under threats, he had to go across the sunlit corner
  • of the park, through that slanting morning sunlight which had been so
  • often the prelude to golden days of leafy wanderings! He had to go past
  • the corner of the laundry where he had so often played cricket with the
  • coachman’s boys (already swallowed up into the working world), he had to
  • follow the laundry wall to the end of the kitchen, and there, where the
  • steps go down and underground, he had to say farewell to the sunlight,
  • farewell to childhood, boyhood, freedom. He had to go down and along the
  • stone corridor to the pantry, and there he had to ask for Mr. Mergleson.
  • He paused on the top step and looked up at the blue sky across which a
  • hawk was slowly drifting. His eyes followed the hawk out of sight beyond
  • a cypress bough, but indeed he was not thinking about the hawk, he was
  • not seeing the hawk; he was struggling with a last wild impulse of his
  • ferial nature. “Why not sling it?” his ferial nature was asking. “Why
  • not even now—_do a bunk_?”
  • It would have been better for him perhaps and better for Mr. Mergleson
  • and better for Shonts if he had yielded to the whisper of the Tempter.
  • But his heart was heavy within him, and he had no lunch. And never a
  • penny. One can do but a very little bunk on an empty belly! “Must” was
  • written all over him. He went down the steps.
  • The passage was long and cool and at the end of it was a swing door.
  • Through that and then to the left, he knew one had to go, past the
  • stillroom and so to the pantry. The maids were at breakfast in the
  • stillroom with the door open. The grimace he made in passing was
  • intended rather to entertain than to insult, and anyhow a chap must do
  • something with his face. And then he came to the pantry and into the
  • presence of Mr. Mergleson.
  • Mr. Mergleson was in his shirt-sleeves and generally dishevelled, having
  • an early cup of tea in an atmosphere full of the bleak memories of
  • overnight. He was an ample man with a large nose, a vast under lip and
  • mutton-chop side-whiskers. His voice would have suited a succulent
  • parrot. He took out a gold watch from his waistcoat pocket and regarded
  • it. “Ten minutes past seven, young man,” he said, “isn’t seven o’clock.”
  • Young Bealby made no articulate answer.
  • “Just stand there for a minute,” said Mr. Mergleson, “and when I’m at
  • libbuty I’ll run through your duties.” And almost ostentatiously he gave
  • himself up to the enjoyment of his cup of tea.
  • Three other gentlemen in deshabille sat at table with Mr. Mergleson.
  • They regarded young Bealby with attention, and the youngest, a
  • red-haired, barefaced youth in shirt-sleeves and a green apron was moved
  • to a grimace that was clearly designed to echo the scowl on young
  • Bealby’s features.
  • The fury that had been subdued by a momentary awe of Mr. Mergleson
  • revived and gathered force. Young Bealby’s face became scarlet, his eyes
  • filled with tears and his mind with the need for movement. After all,—he
  • wouldn’t stand it. He turned round abruptly and made for the door.
  • “Where’n earth you going to?” cried Mr. Mergleson.
  • “He’s shy!” cried the second footman.
  • “Steady on!” cried the first footman and had him by the shoulder in the
  • doorway.
  • “Lemme _go_!” howled the new recruit, struggling. “I won’t be a blooming
  • servant. I won’t.”
  • “Here!” cried Mr. Mergleson, gesticulating with his teaspoon, “bring ’im
  • to the end of the table there. What’s this about a blooming servant?”
  • Bealby, suddenly blubbering, was replaced at the end of the table.
  • “May I ask what’s this about a blooming servant?” asked Mr. Mergleson.
  • Sniff and silence.
  • “Did I understand you to say that you ain’t going to be a blooming
  • servant, young Bealby?”
  • “Yes,” said young Bealby.
  • “Thomas,” said Mr. Mergleson, “just smack ’is ’ed. Smack it rather
  • ’ard....”
  • Things too rapid to relate occurred. “So you’d _bite_, would you?” said
  • Thomas....
  • “Ah!” said Mr. Mergleson. “_Got_ ’im! That one!” ...
  • “Just smack ’is ’ed once more,” said Mr. Mergleson....
  • “And now you just stand there, young man, until I’m at libbuty to attend
  • to you further,” said Mr. Mergleson, and finished his tea slowly and
  • eloquently....
  • The second footman rubbed his shin thoughtfully.
  • “If I got to smack ’is ’ed much,” he said, “’e’d better change into his
  • slippers.”
  • “Take him to ’is room,” said Mr. Mergleson getting up. “See ’e washes
  • the grief and grubbiness off ’is face in the handwash at the end of the
  • passage and make him put on his slippers. Then show ’im ’ow to lay the
  • table in the steward’s room.”
  • § 4
  • The duties to which Bealby was introduced struck him as perplexingly
  • various, undesirably numerous, uninteresting and difficult to remember,
  • and also he did not try to remember them very well because he wanted to
  • do them as badly as possible and he thought that forgetting would be a
  • good way of starting at that. He was beginning at the bottom of the
  • ladder; to him it fell to wait on the upper servants, and the green
  • baize door at the top of the service staircase was the limit of his
  • range. His room was a small wedge-shaped apartment under some steps
  • leading to the servants’ hall, lit by a window that did not open and
  • that gave upon the underground passage. He received his instructions in
  • a state of crumpled mutinousness, but for a day his desire to be
  • remarkably impossible was more than counterbalanced by his respect for
  • the large able hands of the four man-servants, his seniors, and by a
  • disinclination to be returned too promptly to the gardens. Then in a
  • tentative manner he broke two plates and got his head smacked by Mr.
  • Mergleson himself. Mr. Mergleson gave a staccato slap quite as powerful
  • as Thomas’s but otherwise different. The hand of Mr. Mergleson was large
  • and fat and he got his effects by dash, Thomas’s was horny and lingered.
  • After that young Bealby put salt in the teapot in which the housekeeper
  • made tea. But that he observed she washed out with hot water before she
  • put in the tea. It was clear that he had wasted his salt, which ought to
  • have gone into the kettle.
  • Next time,—the kettle.
  • Beyond telling him his duties almost excessively nobody conversed with
  • young Bealby during the long hours of his first day in service. At
  • midday dinner in the servants’ hall, he made one of the kitchen-maids
  • giggle by pulling faces intended to be delicately suggestive of Mr.
  • Mergleson, but that was his nearest approach to disinterested human
  • intercourse.
  • When the hour for retirement came,—“Get out of it. Go to bed, you dirty
  • little Kicker,” said Thomas. “We’ve had about enough of you for one
  • day”—young Bealby sat for a long time on the edge of his bed weighing
  • the possibilities of arson and poison. He wished he had some poison.
  • Some sort of poison with a medieval manner, poison that hurts before it
  • kills. Also he produced a small penny pocket-book with a glazed black
  • cover and blue edges. He headed one page of this “Mergleson” and entered
  • beneath it three black crosses. Then he opened an account to Thomas, who
  • was manifestly destined to be his principal creditor. Bealby was not a
  • forgiving boy. At the village school they had been too busy making him a
  • good Churchman to attend to things like that. There were a lot of
  • crosses for Thomas.
  • And while Bealby made these sinister memoranda downstairs Lady
  • Laxton—for Laxton had bought a baronetcy for twenty thousand down to the
  • party funds and a tip to the whip over the Peptonized Milk
  • flotation—Lady Laxton, a couple of floors above Bealby’s ruffled head
  • mused over her approaching week-end party. It was an important week-end
  • party. The Lord Chancellor of England was coming. Never before had she
  • had so much as a member of the Cabinet at Shonts. He was coming, and do
  • what she would she could not help but connect it with her very strong
  • desire to see the master of Shonts in the clear scarlet of a Deputy
  • Lieutenant. Peter would look so well in that. The Lord Chancellor was
  • coming, and to meet him and to circle about him there were Lord John
  • Woodenhouse and Slinker Bond, there were the Countess of Barracks and
  • Mrs. Rampound Pilby, the novelist, with her husband Rampound Pilby,
  • there was Professor Timbre, the philosopher, and there were four smaller
  • (though quite good) people who would run about very satisfactorily among
  • the others. (At least she thought they would run about very
  • satisfactorily amongst the others, not imagining any evil of her cousin
  • Captain Douglas.)
  • All this good company in Shonts filled Lady Laxton with a pleasant
  • realization of progressive successes but at the same time one must
  • confess that she felt a certain diffidence. In her heart of hearts she
  • knew she had not made this party. It had happened to her. How it might
  • go on happening to her, she did not know, it was beyond her control. She
  • hoped very earnestly that everything would pass off well.
  • The Lord Chancellor was as big a guest as any she had had. One must grow
  • as one grows, but still,—being easy and friendly with him would be, she
  • knew, a tremendous effort. Rather like being easy and friendly with an
  • elephant. She was not good at conversation. The task of interesting
  • people taxed her and puzzled her....
  • It was Slinker Bond, the whip, who had arranged the whole
  • business—after, it must be confessed, a hint from Sir Peter. Laxton had
  • complained that the government were neglecting this part of the country.
  • “They ought to show up more than they do in the county,” said Sir Peter,
  • and added almost carelessly, “I could easily put anybody up at Shonts.”
  • There were to be two select dinner parties and a large but still select
  • Sunday lunch to let in the countryside to the spectacle of the Laxtons
  • taking their (new) proper place at Shonts....
  • It was not only the sense of her own deficiencies that troubled Lady
  • Laxton; there were also her husband’s excesses. He had—it was no use
  • disguising it—rather too much the manner of an employer. He had a way of
  • getting, how could one put it?—_confident_ at dinner and Mergleson
  • seemed to _delight_ in filling up his glass. Then he would contradict a
  • good deal.... She felt that Lord Chancellors however are the sort of men
  • one doesn’t contradict....
  • Then the Lord Chancellor was said to be interested in philosophy—a
  • difficult subject. She had got Timbre to talk to him upon that. Timbre
  • was a professor of philosophy at Oxford, so that was sure to be all
  • right. But she wished she knew one or two good safe things to say in
  • philosophy herself. She had long felt the need of a secretary, and now
  • she felt it more than ever. If she had a secretary, she could just tell
  • him what it was she wanted to talk about and he could get her one or two
  • of the right books and mark the best passages and she could learn it all
  • up.
  • She feared—it was a worrying fear—that Laxton would say right out and
  • very early in the week-end that he didn’t believe in philosophy. He had
  • a way of saying he “didn’t believe in” large things like that,—art,
  • philanthropy, novels, and so on. Sometimes he said, “I don’t believe in
  • all this”—art or whatever it was. She had watched people’s faces when he
  • had said it and she had come to the conclusion that saying you don’t
  • believe in things isn’t the sort of thing people say nowadays. It was
  • wrong, somehow. But she did not want to tell Laxton directly that it was
  • wrong. He would remember if she did, but he had a way of taking such
  • things rather badly at the time.... She hated him to take things badly.
  • “If one could invent some little hint,” she whispered to herself.
  • She had often wished she was better at hints.
  • She was, you see, a gentlewoman, modest, kindly. Her people were quite
  • good people. Poor, of course. But she was not clever, she was anything
  • but clever. And the wives of these captains of industry need to be very
  • clever indeed if they are to escape a magnificent social isolation. They
  • get the titles and the big places and all that sort of thing; people
  • don’t at all intend to isolate them, but there is nevertheless an
  • inadvertent avoidance....
  • Even as she uttered these words, “If one could invent some little hint,”
  • Bealby down there less than forty feet away through the solid floor
  • below her feet and a little to the right was wetting his stump of pencil
  • as wet as he could in order to ensure a sufficiently emphatic fourteenth
  • cross on the score sheet of the doomed Thomas. Most of the other
  • thirteen marks were done with such hard breathing emphasis that the
  • print of them went more than halfway through that little blue-edged
  • book.
  • § 5
  • The arrival of the week-end guests impressed Bealby at first merely as a
  • blessed influence that withdrew the four men-servants into that unknown
  • world on the other side of the green baize door, but then he learnt that
  • it also involved the appearance of five new persons, two valets and
  • three maids, for whom places had to be laid in the steward’s room.
  • Otherwise Lady Laxton’s social arrangements had no more influence upon
  • the mind of Bealby than the private affairs of the Emperor of China.
  • There was something going on up there, beyond even his curiosity. All he
  • heard of it was a distant coming and going of vehicles and some slight
  • talk to which he was inattentive while the coachman and grooms were
  • having a drink in the pantry—until these maids and valets appeared. They
  • seemed to him to appear suddenly out of nothing, like slugs after rain,
  • black and rather shiny, sitting about inactively and quietly consuming
  • small matters. He disliked them, and they regarded him without affection
  • or respect.
  • Who cared? He indicated his feeling towards them as soon as he was out
  • of the steward’s room by a gesture of the hand and nose venerable only
  • by reason of its antiquity.
  • He had things more urgent to think about than strange valets and maids.
  • Thomas had laid hands on him, jeered at him, inflicted shameful
  • indignities on him and he wanted to kill Thomas in some frightful
  • manner. (But if possible unobtrusively.)
  • If he had been a little Japanese boy, this would have been an entirely
  • honourable desire. It would have been Bushido and all that sort of
  • thing. In the gardener’s stepson however it is—undesirable....
  • Thomas, on the other hand, having remarked the red light of revenge in
  • Bealby’s eye and being secretly afraid, felt that his honour was
  • concerned in not relaxing his persecutions. He called him “Kicker” and
  • when he did not answer to that name, he called him “Snorter,” “Bleater,”
  • “Snooks,” and finally tweaked his ear. Then he saw fit to assume that
  • Bealby was deaf and that ear-tweaking was the only available method of
  • address. This led on to the convention of a sign language whereby ideas
  • were communicated to Bealby by means of painful but frequently quite
  • ingeniously symbolical freedoms with various parts of his person. Also
  • Thomas affected to discover uncleanliness in Bealby’s head and succeeded
  • after many difficulties in putting it into a sinkful of lukewarm water.
  • Meanwhile young Bealby devoted such scanty time as he could give to
  • reflection to debating whether it is better to attack Thomas suddenly
  • with a carving knife or throw a lighted lamp. The large pantry inkpot of
  • pewter might be effective in its way, he thought, but he doubted whether
  • in the event of a charge it had sufficient stopping power. He was also
  • curiously attracted by a long two-pronged toasting-fork that hung at the
  • side of the pantry fireplace. It had _reach_....
  • Over all these dark thoughts and ill-concealed emotions Mr. Mergleson
  • prevailed, large yet speedy, speedy yet exact, parroting orders and
  • making plump gestures, performing duties and seeing that duties were
  • performed.
  • Matters came to a climax late on Saturday night at the end of a trying
  • day, just before Mr. Mergleson went round to lock up and turn out the
  • lights.
  • Thomas came into the pantry close behind Bealby, who, greatly belated
  • through his own inefficiency, was carrying a tray of glasses from the
  • steward’s room, applied an ungentle hand to his neck, and ruffled up his
  • back hair in a smart and painful manner. At the same time Thomas
  • remarked, “Burrrrh!”
  • Bealby stood still for a moment and then put down his tray on the table
  • and, making peculiar sounds as he did so, resorted very rapidly to the
  • toasting fork.... He got a prong into Thomas’s chin at the first prod.
  • How swift are the changes of the human soul! At the moment of his thrust
  • young Bealby was a primordial savage; so soon as he saw this incredible
  • piercing of Thomas’s chin—for all the care that Bealby had taken it
  • might just as well have been Thomas’s eye—he moved swiftly through the
  • ages and became a simple Christian child. He abandoned violence and
  • fled.
  • The fork hung for a moment from the visage of Thomas like a twisted
  • beard of brass, and then rattled on the ground.
  • Thomas clapped his hand to his chin and discovered blood.
  • “You little—!” He never found the right word (which perhaps is just as
  • well); instead he started in pursuit of Bealby.
  • Bealby—in his sudden horror of his own act—and Thomas fled headlong into
  • the passage and made straight for the service stairs that went up into a
  • higher world. He had little time to think. Thomas with a red-smeared
  • chin appeared in pursuit. Thomas the avenger. Thomas really roused.
  • Bealby shot through the green baize door and the pursuing footman pulled
  • up only just in time not to follow him.
  • Only just in time. He had an instinctive instant anxious fear of great
  • dangers. He heard something, a sound as though the young of some very
  • large animal had squeaked feebly. He had a glimpse of something black
  • and white—and large....
  • Then something, some glass thing, smashed.
  • He steadied the green baize door which was wobbling on its brass hinges,
  • controlled his panting breath and listened.
  • A low rich voice was—ejaculating. It was not Bealby’s voice, it was the
  • voice of some substantial person being quietly but deeply angry. They
  • were the ejaculations restrained in tone but not in quality of a ripe
  • and well-stored mind,—no boy’s thin stuff.
  • Then very softly Thomas pushed open the door—just widely enough to see
  • and as instantly let it fall back into place.
  • Very gently and yet with an alert rapidity he turned about and stole
  • down the service stairs.
  • His superior officer appeared in the passage below.
  • “Mr. Mergleson,” he cried, “I say—Mr. Mergleson.”
  • “What’s up?” said Mr. Mergleson.
  • “He’s gone!”
  • “Who?”
  • “Bealby.”
  • “Home?” This almost hopefully.
  • “No.”
  • “Where?”
  • “Up there! I think he ran against somebody.”
  • Mr. Mergleson scrutinized his subordinate’s face for a second. Then he
  • listened intently; both men listened intently.
  • “Have to fetch him out of that,” said Mr. Mergleson, suddenly preparing
  • for brisk activity.
  • Thomas bent lower over the banisters.
  • “_The Lord Chancellor!_” he whispered with white lips and a sideways
  • gesture of his head.
  • “What about ’im?” said Mergleson, arrested by something in the manner of
  • Thomas.
  • Thomas’s whisper became so fine that Mr. Mergleson drew nearer to catch
  • it and put up a hand to his ear. Thomas repeated the last remark. “He’s
  • just through there—on the landing—cursing and swearing—’orrible
  • things—more like a mad turkey than a human being.”
  • “Where’s Bealby?”
  • “He must almost ’ave run into ’im,” said Thomas after consideration.
  • “But now—where is he?”
  • Thomas pantomimed infinite perplexity.
  • Mr. Mergleson reflected and decided upon his line. He came up the
  • service staircase, lifted his chin and with an air of meek officiousness
  • went through the green door. There was no one now on the landing, there
  • was nothing remarkable on the landing except a broken tumbler, but
  • half-way up the grand staircase stood the Lord Chancellor. Under one arm
  • the great jurist carried a soda water syphon and he grasped a decanter
  • of whisky in his hand. He turned sharply at the sound of the green baize
  • door and bent upon Mr. Mergleson the most terrible eyebrows that ever,
  • surely! adorned a legal visage. He was very red in the face and
  • savage-looking.
  • “Was it _you_,” he said with a threatening gesture of the decanter, and
  • his voice betrayed a noble indignation, “Was it _you_ who slapped me
  • behind?”
  • “Slapped you behind, me lord??”
  • “Slapped me _behind_. Don’t I speak—plainly?”
  • “I—such a libbuty, me lord!”
  • “Idiot! I ask you a plain question—”
  • With almost inconceivable alacrity Mr. Mergleson rushed up three steps,
  • leapt forward and caught the syphon as it slipped from his lordship’s
  • arm.
  • He caught it, but at a price. He overset and, clasping it in his hands,
  • struck his lordship first with the syphon on the left shin and then
  • butted him with a face that was still earnestly respectful in the knees.
  • His lordship’s legs were driven sideways, so that they were no longer
  • beneath his centre of gravity. With a monosyllabic remark of a
  • topographical nature his lordship collapsed upon Mr. Mergleson. The
  • decanter flew out of his grasp and smashed presently with emphasis upon
  • the landing below. The syphon, escaping from the wreckage of Mr.
  • Mergleson and drawn no doubt by a natural affinity, rolled noisily from
  • step to step in pursuit of the decanter....
  • It was a curious little procession that hurried down the great staircase
  • of Shonts that night. First the whisky like a winged harbinger with the
  • pedestrian syphon in pursuit. Then the great lawyer gripping the great
  • butler by the tails of his coat and punching furiously. Then Mr.
  • Mergleson trying wildly to be respectful—even in disaster. First the
  • Lord Chancellor dived over Mr. Mergleson, grappling as he passed, then
  • Mr. Mergleson, attempting explanations, was pulled backwards over the
  • Lord Chancellor; then again the Lord Chancellor was for a giddy but
  • vindictive moment uppermost; a second rotation and they reached the
  • landing.
  • Bang! There was a deafening report—
  • CHAPTER II
  • A WEEK-END AT SHONTS
  • § 1
  • The week-end visit is a form of entertainment peculiar to Great Britain.
  • It is a thing that could have been possible only in a land essentially
  • aristocratic and mellow, in which even the observance of the sabbath has
  • become mellow. At every London terminus on a Saturday afternoon the
  • outgoing trains have an unusually large proportion of first class
  • carriages, and a peculiar abundance of rich-looking dressing-bags
  • provoke the covetous eye. A discreet activity of valets and maids
  • mingles with the stimulated alertness of the porters. One marks
  • celebrities in gay raiment. There is an indefinable air of distinction
  • upon platform and bookstall. Sometimes there are carriages reserved for
  • especially privileged parties. There are greetings.
  • “And so _you_ are coming too!”
  • “No, this time it is Shonts.”
  • “The place where they found the Rubens. Who _has_ it now?” ...
  • Through this cheerfully prosperous throng went the Lord Chancellor with
  • his high nose, those eyebrows of his which he seemed to be able to furl
  • or unfurl at will and his expression of tranquil self-sufficiency. He
  • was going to Shonts for his party and not for his pleasure, but there
  • was no reason why that should appear upon his face. He went along
  • preoccupied, pretending to see nobody, leaving to others the
  • disadvantage of the greeting. In his right hand he carried a small
  • important bag of leather. Under his left arm he bore a philosophical
  • work by Doctor MacTaggart, three illustrated papers, the _Fortnightly
  • Review_, the day’s _Times_, the _Hibbert Journal_, _Punch_ and two blue
  • books. His Lordship never quite knew the limits set to what he could
  • carry under his arm. His man, Candler, followed therefore at a suitable
  • distance with several papers that had already been dropped, alert to
  • retrieve any further losses.
  • At the large bookstall they passed close by Mrs. Rampound Pilby who,
  • according to her custom, was feigning to be a member of the general
  • public and was asking the clerk about her last book. The Lord Chancellor
  • saw Rampound Pilby hovering at hand and deftly failed to catch his eye.
  • He loathed the Rampound Pilbys. He speculated for a moment what sort of
  • people could possibly stand Mrs. Pilby’s vast pretensions—even from
  • Saturday to Monday. One dinner party on her right hand had glutted him
  • for life. He chose a corner seat, took possession of both it and the
  • seat opposite it in order to have somewhere to put his feet, left
  • Candler to watch over and pack in his hand luggage and went high up the
  • platform, remaining there with his back to the world—rather like a
  • bigger more aquiline Napoleon—in order to evade the great novelist.
  • In this he was completely successful.
  • He returned however to find Candler on the verge of a personal conflict
  • with a very fair young man in grey. He was so fair as to be almost an
  • albino, except that his eyes were quick and brown; he was blushing the
  • brightest pink and speaking very quickly.
  • “These two places,” said Candler, breathless with the badness of his
  • case, “are engaged.”
  • “Oh ve-_very_ well,” said the very fair young man with his eyebrows and
  • moustache looking very pale by contrast, “have it so. But do permit me
  • to occupy the middle seat of the carriage. With a residuary interest in
  • the semi-gentleman’s place.”
  • “You little know, young man, _whom_ you are calling a semi-gentleman,”
  • said Candler, whose speciality was grammar.
  • “Here he is!” said the young gentleman.
  • “Which place will you have, my Lord?” asked Candler, abandoning his case
  • altogether.
  • “Facing,” said the Lord Chancellor slowly unfurling the eyebrows and
  • scowling at the young man in grey.
  • “Then I’ll have the other,” said the very fair young man talking very
  • glibly. He spoke with a quick low voice, like one who forces himself to
  • keep going. “You see,” he said, addressing the great jurist with the
  • extreme familiarity of the courageously nervous, “I’ve gone into this
  • sort of thing before. First, mind you, I have a far look for a vacant
  • corner. I’m not the sort to spoil sport. But if there isn’t a vacant
  • corner I look for traces of a semi-gentleman. A semi-gentleman is one
  • who has a soft cap and not an umbrella—his friend in the opposite seat
  • has the umbrella—or he has an umbrella and not a soft cap, or a
  • waterproof and not a bag, or a bag and not a waterproof. And a half
  • interest in a rug. That’s what I call a semi-gentleman. You see the
  • idea. Sort of divided beggar. Nothing in any way offensive.”
  • “Sir,” said the Lord Chancellor, interrupting in a voice of concentrated
  • passion, “I don’t care a _rap_ what you call a semi-gentleman. _Will_
  • you get out of my way?”
  • “Just as you please,” said the very fair young gentleman, and going a
  • few paces from the carriage door he whistled for the boy with the
  • papers. He was bearing up bravely.
  • “_Pink ’un?_” said the very fair young gentleman almost breathlessly.
  • “_Black and White._ What’s all these others? _Athenæum?_ _Sporting and
  • Dramatic?_ Right O. And—Eh! What? Do I _look_ the sort that buys a
  • _Spectator_? You don’t know! My dear boy, where’s your _savoir faire_?”
  • § 2
  • The Lord Chancellor was a philosopher and not easily perturbed. His
  • severe manner was consciously assumed and never much more than
  • skin-deep. He had already furled his eyebrows and dismissed his
  • vis-a-vis from his mind before the train started. He turned over the
  • _Hibbert Journal_, and read in it with a large tolerance.
  • Dimly on the outskirts of his consciousness the very fair young man
  • hovered, as a trifling annoyance, as something pink and hot rustling a
  • sheet of a discordant shade of pink, as something that got in the way of
  • his legs and whistled softly some trivial cheerful air, just to show how
  • little it cared. Presently, very soon, this vague trouble would pass out
  • of his consciousness altogether....
  • The Lord Chancellor was no mere amateur of philosophy. His activities in
  • that direction were a part of his public reputation. He lectured on
  • religion and æsthetics. He was a fluent Hegelian. He spent his holidays,
  • it was understood, in the Absolute—at any rate in Germany. He would
  • sometimes break into philosophy at dinner tables and particularly over
  • the desert and be more luminously incomprehensible while still
  • apparently sober, than almost anyone. An article in the Hibbert caught
  • and held his attention. It attempted to define a new and doubtful
  • variety of Infinity. You know, of course, that there are many sorts and
  • species of Infinity, and that the Absolute is just the king among
  • Infinities as the lion is king among the Beasts....
  • “I say,” said a voice coming out of the world of Relativity and coughing
  • the cough of those who break a silence, “you aren’t going to Shonts, are
  • you?”
  • The Lord Chancellor returned slowly to earth.
  • “Just seen your label,” said the very fair young man. “You see,—_I’m_
  • going to Shonts.”
  • The Lord Chancellor remained outwardly serene. He reflected for a
  • moment. And then he fell into that snare which is more fatal to great
  • lawyers and judges perhaps than to any other class of men, the snare of
  • the crushing repartee. One had come into his head now,—a beauty.
  • “Then we shall meet there,” he said in his suavest manner.
  • “Well—rather.”
  • “It would be a great pity,” said the Lord Chancellor with an effective
  • blandness, using a kind of wry smile that he employed to make things
  • humorous, “it would be a great pity, don’t you think, to anticipate that
  • pleasure.”
  • And having smiled the retort well home with his head a little on one
  • side, he resumed with large leisurely movements the reading of his
  • _Hibbert Journal_.
  • “Got me there,” said the very fair young man belatedly, looking boiled
  • to a turn, and after a period of restlessness settled down to an
  • impatient perusal of _Black and White_.
  • “There’s a whole blessed week-end of course,” the young man remarked
  • presently without looking up from his paper and apparently pursuing some
  • obscure meditations....
  • A vague uneasiness crept into the Lord Chancellor’s mind as he continued
  • to appear to peruse. Out of what train of thought could such a remark
  • arise? His weakness for crushing retort had a little betrayed him....
  • It was, however, only when he found himself upon the platform of
  • Chelsome, which as everyone knows is the station for Shonts, and
  • discovered Mr. and Mrs. Rampound Pilby upon the platform, looking
  • extraordinarily like a national monument and its custodian, that the
  • Lord Chancellor, began to realize that he was in the grip of fate, and
  • that the service he was doing his party by week-ending with the Laxtons
  • was likely to be not simply joyless but disagreeable.
  • Well, anyhow, he had MacTaggart, and he could always work in his own
  • room....
  • § 3
  • By the end of dinner the Lord Chancellor was almost at the end of his
  • large but clumsy endurance; he kept his eyebrows furled only by the most
  • strenuous relaxation of his muscles, and within he was a sea of silent
  • blasphemies. All sorts of little things had accumulated....
  • He exercised an unusual temperance with the port and old brandy his host
  • pressed upon him, feeling that he dared not relax lest his rage had its
  • way with him. The cigars were quite intelligent at any rate, and he
  • smoked and listened with a faintly perceptible disdain to the
  • conversation of the other men. At any rate Mrs. Rampound Pilby was out
  • of the room. The talk had arisen out of a duologue that had preceded the
  • departure of the ladies, a duologue of Timbre’s, about apparitions and
  • the reality of the future life. Sir Peter Laxton, released from the eyes
  • of his wife, was at liberty to say he did not believe in all this stuff;
  • it was just thought transference and fancy and all that sort of thing.
  • His declaration did not arrest the flow of feeble instances and
  • experiences into which such talk invariably degenerates. His Lordship
  • remained carelessly attentive, his eyebrows unfurled but drooping, his
  • cigar upward at an acute angle; he contributed no anecdotes, content now
  • and then to express himself compactly by some brief sentence of pure
  • Hegelian—much as a Mahometan might spit.
  • “Why! come to that, they say Shonts is haunted,” said Sir Peter. “I
  • suppose we could have a ghost here in no time if I chose to take it on.
  • Rare place for a ghost, too.”
  • The very fair young man of the train had got a name now and was Captain
  • Douglas. When he was not blushing too brightly he was rather good
  • looking. He was a distant cousin of Lady Laxton’s. He impressed the Lord
  • Chancellor as unabashed. He engaged people in conversation with a
  • cheerful familiarity that excluded only the Lord Chancellor, and even at
  • the Lord Chancellor he looked ever and again. He pricked up his ears at
  • the mention of ghosts, and afterwards when the Lord Chancellor came to
  • think things over, it seemed to him that he had caught a curious glance
  • of the Captain’s bright little brown eye.
  • “What sort of ghost, Sir Peter? Chains? Eh? No?”
  • “Nothing of that sort, it seems. I don’t know much about it, I wasn’t
  • sufficiently interested. No, sort of spook that bangs about and does you
  • a mischief. What’s its name? Plundergeist?”
  • “Poltergeist,” the Lord Chancellor supplied carelessly in the pause.
  • “Runs its hand over your hair in the dark. Taps your shoulder. All
  • nonsense. But we don’t tell the servants. Sort of thing I don’t believe
  • in. Easily explained,—what with panelling and secret passages and
  • priests’ holes and all that.”
  • “Priests’ holes!” Douglas was excited.
  • “Where they hid. Perfect rabbit warren. There’s one going out from the
  • drawing-room alcove. Quite a good room in its way. But you know,”—a note
  • of wrath crept into Sir Peter’s voice,—“they didn’t treat me fairly
  • about these priests’ holes. I ought to have had a sketch and a plan of
  • these priests’ holes. When a chap is given possession of a place, he
  • ought to be given possession. Well! I don’t know where half of them are
  • myself. That’s not possession. Else we might refurnish them and do them
  • up a bit. I guess they’re pretty musty.”
  • Captain Douglas spoke with his eye on the Lord Chancellor. “Sure there
  • isn’t a murdered priest in the place, Sir Peter?” he asked.
  • “Nothing of the sort,” said Sir Peter. “I don’t believe in these
  • priests’ holes. Half of ’em never had priests in ’em. It’s all pretty
  • tidy rot I expect—come to the bottom of it....”
  • The conversation did not get away from ghosts and secret passages until
  • the men went to the drawing-room. If it seemed likely to do so Captain
  • Douglas pulled it back. He seemed to delight in these silly particulars;
  • the sillier they were the more he was delighted.
  • The Lord Chancellor was a little preoccupied by one of those irrational
  • suspicions that will sometimes afflict the most intelligent of men. Why
  • did Douglas want to know all the particulars about the Shonts ghosts?
  • Why every now and then did he glance with that odd expression at one’s
  • face,—a glance half appealing and half amused. Amused! It was a strange
  • fancy, but the Lord Chancellor could almost have sworn that the young
  • man was laughing at him. At dinner he had had that feeling one has at
  • times of being talked about; he had glanced along the table to discover
  • the Captain and a rather plain woman, that idiot Timbre’s wife she
  • probably was, with their heads together looking up at him quite
  • definitely and both manifestly pleased by something Douglas was telling
  • her....
  • What was it Douglas had said in the train? Something like a threat. But
  • the exact words had slipped the Lord Chancellor’s memory....
  • The Lord Chancellor’s preoccupation was just sufficient to make him a
  • little unwary. He drifted into grappling distance of Mrs. Rampound
  • Pilby. Her voice caught him like a lasso and drew him in.
  • “Well, and _how_ is Lord Moggeridge now?” she asked.
  • What on earth is one to say to such an impertinence?
  • She was always like that. She spoke to a man of the calibre of Lord
  • Bacon as though she was speaking to a schoolboy home for the holidays.
  • She had an invincible air of knowing all through everybody. It gave
  • rather confidence to her work than charm to her manner.
  • “Do you still go on with your philosophy?” she said.
  • “No,” shouted the Lord Chancellor, losing all self-control for the
  • moment and waving his eyebrows about madly, “no, I go _off_ with it.”
  • “For your vacations? Ah, Lord Moggeridge, how I envy you great lawyers
  • your long vacations. _I_—never get a vacation. Always we poor authors
  • are pursued by our creations, sometimes it’s typescript, sometimes it’s
  • proofs. Not that I really complain of proofs. I confess to a weakness
  • for proofs. Sometimes, alas! it’s criticism. Such _undiscerning_
  • criticism!...”
  • The Lord Chancellor began to think very swiftly of some tremendous lie
  • that would enable him to escape at once without incivility from Lady
  • Laxton’s drawing-room. Then he perceived that Mrs. Rampound Pilby was
  • asking him; “Is that _the_ Captain Douglas, or his brother, who’s in
  • love with the actress woman?”
  • The Lord Chancellor made no answer. What he thought was “Great Silly
  • Idiot! How should _I_ know?”
  • “I think it must be _the_ one,—the one who had to leave Portsmouth in
  • disgrace because of the ragging scandal. He did nothing there, they say,
  • but organize practical jokes. Some of them were quite subtle practical
  • jokes. He’s a cousin of our hostess; that perhaps accounts for his
  • presence....”
  • The Lord Chancellor’s comment betrayed the drift of his thoughts. “He’d
  • better not try that sort of thing on here,” he said. “I
  • abominate—clowning.”
  • Drawing-room did not last very long. Even Lady Laxton could not miss the
  • manifest gloom of her principal guest, and after the good-nights and
  • barley water and lemonade on the great landing Sir Peter led Lord
  • Moggeridge by the arm—he hated being led by the arm—into the small but
  • still spacious apartment that was called the study. The Lord Chancellor
  • was now very thirsty; he was not used to abstinence of any sort; but Sir
  • Peter’s way of suggesting a drink roused such a fury of resentment in
  • him that he refused tersely and conclusively. There was nobody else in
  • the study but Captain Douglas, who seemed to hesitate upon the verge of
  • some familiar address, and Lord Woodenhouse, who was thirsty, too, and
  • held a vast tumbler of whisky and soda, with a tinkle of ice in it, on
  • his knee in a way annoying to a parched man. The Lord Chancellor helped
  • himself to a cigar and assumed the middle of the fireplace with an air
  • of contentment, but he could feel the self-control running out of the
  • heels of his boots.
  • Sir Peter, after a quite unsuccessful invasion of his own hearthrug—the
  • Lord Chancellor stood like a rock—secured the big arm-chair, stuck his
  • feet out towards his distinguished guest and resumed a talk that he had
  • been holding with Lord Woodenhouse about firearms. Mergleson had as
  • usual been too attentive to his master’s glass, and the fine edge was
  • off Sir Peter’s deference. “I always have carried firearms,” he said,
  • “and I always shall. Used properly they are a great protection. Even in
  • the country how are you to know who you’re going to run up
  • against—anywhen?”
  • “But you might shoot and hit something,” said Douglas.
  • “Properly used, I said—properly used. Whipping out a revolver and
  • shooting _at_ a man, that’s not properly used. Almost as bad as pointing
  • it at him—which is pretty certain to make him fly straight at you. If
  • he’s got an ounce of pluck. But _I_ said properly used and I _mean_
  • properly used.”
  • The Lord Chancellor tried to think about that article on Infinities,
  • while appearing to listen to this fool’s talk. He despised revolvers.
  • Armed with such eyebrows as his it was natural for him to despise
  • revolvers.
  • “Now, I’ve got some nice little barkers upstairs,” said Sir Peter. “I’d
  • almost welcome a burglar, just to try them.”
  • “If you shoot a burglar,” said Lord Woodenhouse abruptly, with a gust of
  • that ill-temper that was frequent at Shonts towards bedtime, “when he’s
  • not attacking you, it’s murder.”
  • Sir Peter held up an offensively pacifying hand. “I know _that_,” he
  • said; “you needn’t tell me _that_.”
  • He raised his voice a little to increase his already excessive
  • accentuations. “_I_ said properly used.”
  • A yawn took the Lord Chancellor unawares and he caught it dexterously
  • with his hand. Then he saw Douglas hastily pull at his little blond
  • moustache to conceal a smile,—grinning ape! What was there to smile at?
  • The man had been smiling all the evening.
  • Up to something?
  • “Now let me _tell_ you,” said Sir Peter, “let me _tell_ you the proper
  • way to use a revolver. You whip it out and _instantly_ let fly at the
  • ground. You should never let anyone see a revolver ever before they hear
  • it—see? You let fly at the ground first off, and the concussion stuns
  • them. It doesn’t stun you. _You_ expect it, _they_ don’t. See? There you
  • are—five shots left, master of the situation.”
  • “I think, Sir Peter, I’ll bid you good-night,” said the Lord Chancellor,
  • allowing his eye to rest for one covetous moment on the decanter, and
  • struggling with the devil of pride.
  • Sir Peter made a gesture of extreme friendliness from his chair,
  • expressive of the Lord Chancellor’s freedom to do whatever he pleased at
  • Shonts. “I may perhaps tell you a little story that happened once in
  • Morocco.”
  • “My eyes won’t keep open any longer,” said Captain Douglas suddenly,
  • with a whirl of his knuckles into his sockets, and stood up.
  • Lord Woodenhouse stood up too.
  • “You see,” said Sir Peter, standing also but sticking to his subject and
  • his hearer. “This was when I was younger than I am now, you must
  • understand, and I wasn’t married. Just mooching about a bit, between
  • business and pleasure. Under such circumstances one goes into parts of a
  • foreign town where one wouldn’t go if one was older and wiser....”
  • Captain Douglas left Sir Peter and Woodenhouse to it.
  • He emerged on the landing and selected one of the lighted candlesticks
  • upon the table. “Lord!” he whispered. He grimaced in soliloquy and then
  • perceived the Lord Chancellor regarding him with suspicion and disfavour
  • from the ascending staircase. He attempted ease. For the first time
  • since the train incident he addressed Lord Moggeridge.
  • “I gather, my lord,—don’t believe in ghosts?” he said.
  • “No, Sir,” said the Lord Chancellor, “I don’t.”
  • “They won’t trouble me to-night.”
  • “They won’t trouble any of us.”
  • “Fine old house anyhow,” said Captain Douglas.
  • The Lord Chancellor disdained to reply. He went on his way upstairs.
  • § 4
  • When the Lord Chancellor sat down before the thoughtful fire in the fine
  • old panelled room assigned to him he perceived that he was too disturbed
  • to sleep. This was going to be an infernal week-end. The worst week-end
  • he had ever had. Mrs. Rampound Pilby maddened him; Timbre, who was a
  • Pragmatist—which stands in the same relation to a Hegelian that a small
  • dog does to a large cat—exasperated him; he loathed Laxton, detested
  • Rampound Pilby and feared—as far as he was capable of fearing
  • anything—Captain Douglas. There was no refuge, no soul in the house to
  • whom he could turn for consolation and protection from these others.
  • Slinker Bond could talk only of the affairs of the party, and the Lord
  • Chancellor, being Lord Chancellor, had long since lost any interest in
  • the affairs of the party; Woodenhouse could talk of nothing. The women
  • were astonishingly negligible. There were practically no pretty women.
  • There ought always to be pretty young women for a Lord Chancellor,
  • pretty _young_ women who can at least seem to listen....
  • And he was atrociously thirsty.
  • His room was supplied only with water,—stuff you use to clean your
  • teeth—and nothing else....
  • No good thinking about it....
  • He decided that the best thing he could do to compose himself before
  • turning in would be to sit down at the writing-table and write a few
  • sheets of Hegelian—about that Infinity article in the Hibbert. There is
  • indeed no better consolation for a troubled mind than the Hegelian
  • exercises; they lift it above—everything. He took off his coat and sat
  • down to this beautiful amusement, but he had scarcely written a page
  • before his thirst became a torment. He kept thinking of that great
  • tumbler Woodenhouse had held,—sparkling, golden, cool—and stimulating.
  • What he wanted was a good stiff whisky and a cigar, one of Laxton’s
  • cigars, the only good thing in his entertainment so far.
  • And then Philosophy.
  • Even as a student he had been a worker of the Teutonic type,—never
  • abstemious.
  • He thought of ringing and demanding these comforts, and then it occurred
  • to him that it was a little late to ring for things. Why not fetch them
  • from the study himself?...
  • He opened his door and looked out upon the great staircase. It was a
  • fine piece of work, that staircase. Low, broad, dignified....
  • There seemed to be nobody about. The lights were still on. He listened
  • for a little while, and then put on his coat and went with a soft
  • swiftness that was still quite dignified downstairs to the study, the
  • study redolent of Sir Peter.
  • He made his modest collection.
  • Lord Moggeridge came nearer to satisfaction as he emerged from the study
  • that night at Shonts than at any other moment during this ill-advised
  • week-end. In his pocket were four thoroughly good cigars. In one hand he
  • held a cut glass decanter of whisky. In the other a capacious tumbler.
  • Under his arm, with that confidence in the unlimited portative power of
  • his arm that nothing could shake, he had tucked the syphon. His soul
  • rested upon the edge of tranquillity like a bird that has escaped the
  • fowler. He was already composing his next sentence about that new
  • variety of Infinity....
  • Then something struck him from behind and impelled him forward a couple
  • of paces. It was something hairy, something in the nature, he thought
  • afterwards, of a worn broom. And also there were two other things softer
  • and a little higher on each side....
  • Then it was he made that noise like the young of some large animal.
  • He dropped the glass in a hasty attempt to save the syphon....
  • “What in the name of Heaven—?” he cried, and found himself alone.
  • “Captain Douglas!”
  • The thought leapt to his mind.
  • But indeed, it was not Captain Douglas. It was Bealby. Bealby in panic
  • flight from Thomas. And how was Bealby to know that this large, richly
  • laden man was the Lord Chancellor of England? Never before had Bealby
  • seen anyone in evening dress except a butler, and so he supposed this
  • was just some larger, finer kind of butler that they kept upstairs. Some
  • larger, finer kind of butler blocking the path of escape. Bealby had
  • taken in the situation with the rapidity of a hunted animal. The massive
  • form blocked the door to the left....
  • In the playground of the village school Bealby had been preëminent for
  • his dodging; he moved as quickly as a lizard. His little hands, his
  • head, poised with the skill of a practised butter, came against that
  • mighty back, and then Bealby had dodged into the study....
  • But it seemed to Lord Moggeridge, staggering over his broken glass and
  • circling about defensively, that this fearful indignity could come only
  • from Captain Douglas. Foolery.... Blup, blup.... Sham Poltergeist.
  • Imbeciles....
  • He said as much, believing that this young man and possibly confederates
  • were within hearing; he said as much—hotly. He went on to remark of an
  • unphilosophical tendency about Captain Douglas generally, and about army
  • officers, practical joking, Laxton’s hospitalities, Shonts.... Thomas,
  • you will remember, heard him....
  • Nothing came of it. No answer, not a word of apology.
  • At last in a great dudgeon and with a kind of wariness about his back,
  • the Lord Chancellor, with things more spoilt for him than ever, went on
  • his way upstairs.
  • When the green baize door opened behind him, he turned like a shot, and
  • a large foolish-faced butler appeared. Lord Moggeridge, with a
  • sceptre-like motion of the decanter, very quietly and firmly asked him a
  • simple question and then, then the lunatic must needs leap up three
  • stairs and dive suddenly and upsettingly at his legs.
  • Lord Moggeridge was paralyzed with amazement. His legs were struck from
  • under him. He uttered one brief topographical cry.
  • (To Sir Peter unfortunately it sounded like “Help!”)
  • For a few seconds the impressions that rushed upon Lord Moggeridge were
  • too rapid for adequate examination. He had a compelling fancy to kill
  • butlers. Things culminated in a pistol shot. And then he found himself
  • sitting on the landing beside a disgracefully dishevelled manservant,
  • and his host was running downstairs to them with a revolver in his hand.
  • On occasion Lord Moggeridge could produce a tremendous voice. He did so
  • now. For a moment he stared panting at Sir Peter, and then emphasized by
  • a pointing finger came the voice. Never had it been so charged with
  • emotion.
  • “What does this _mean_, you, Sir?” he shouted. “What does this mean?”
  • It was exactly what Sir Peter had intended to say.
  • § 5
  • Explanations are detestable things.
  • And anyhow it isn’t right to address your host as “You, Sir.”
  • § 6
  • Throughout the evening the persuasion had grown in Lady Laxton’s mind
  • that all was not going well with the Lord Chancellor. It was impossible
  • to believe he was enjoying himself. But she did not know how to give
  • things a turn for the better. Clever women would have known, but she was
  • so convinced she was not clever that she did not even try.
  • Thing after thing had gone wrong.
  • How was she to know that there were two sorts of philosophy,—quite
  • different? She had thought philosophy was philosophy. But it seemed that
  • there were these two sorts, if not more; a round large sort that talked
  • about the Absolute and was scornfully superior and rather irascible, and
  • a jabby-pointed sort that called people “Tender” or “Tough,” and was
  • generally much too familiar. To bring them together was just mixing
  • trouble. There ought to be little books for hostesses explaining these
  • things....
  • Then it was extraordinary that the Lord Chancellor, who was so
  • tremendously large and clever, wouldn’t go and talk to Mrs. Rampound
  • Pilby, who was also so tremendously large and clever. Repeatedly Lady
  • Laxton had tried to get them into touch with one another. Until at last
  • the Lord Chancellor had said distinctly and deliberately, when she had
  • suggested his going across to the eminent writer, “God forbid!” Her
  • dream of a large clever duologue that she could afterwards recall with
  • pleasure was altogether shattered. She thought the Lord Chancellor
  • uncommonly hard to please. These weren’t the only people for him. Why
  • couldn’t he chat party secrets with Slinker Bond or say things to Lord
  • Woodenhouse? You could say anything you liked to Lord Woodenhouse. Or
  • talk with Mr. Timbre. Mrs. Timbre had given him an excellent opening;
  • she had asked, “Wasn’t it a dreadful anxiety always to have the Great
  • Seal to mind?” He had simply _grunted_.... And then why did he keep on
  • looking so _dangerously_ at Captain Douglas?...
  • Perhaps to-morrow things would take a turn for the better....
  • One can at least be hopeful. Even if one is not _clever_ one can be
  • that....
  • From such thoughts as these it was that this unhappy hostess was roused
  • by a sound of smashing glass, a rumpus, and a pistol shot.
  • She stood up, she laid her hand on her heart, she said “_Oh!_” and
  • gripped her dressing-table for support....
  • After a long time and when it seemed that it was now nothing more than a
  • hubbub of voices, in which her husband’s could be distinguished clearly,
  • she crept out very softly upon the upper landing.
  • She perceived her cousin, Captain Douglas, looking extremely fair
  • and frail and untrustworthy in a much too gorgeous kimono
  • dressing-gown of embroidered Japanese silk. “I can assure you, my
  • lord,” he was saying in a strange high-pitched deliberate voice,
  • “on—my—word—of—honour—as—a—soldier, that I know absolutely nothing
  • about it.”
  • “Sure it wasn’t all imagination, my lord?” Sir Peter asked with his
  • inevitable infelicity....
  • She decided to lean over the balustrading and ask very quietly and
  • clearly:
  • “Lord Moggeridge, please! is anything the matter?”
  • § 6
  • All human beings are egotists, but there is no egotism to compare with
  • the egotism of the very young.
  • Bealby was so much the centre of his world that he was incapable of any
  • interpretation of this shouting and uproar, this smashing of decanters
  • and firing of pistol shots, except in reference to himself. He supposed
  • it to be a Hue and Cry. He supposed that he was being hunted—hunted by a
  • pack of great butlers hounded on by the irreparably injured Thomas. The
  • thought of upstairs gentlefolks passed quite out of his mind. He
  • snatched up a faked Syrian dagger that lay, in the capacity of a paper
  • knife, on the study table, concealed himself under the chintz valance of
  • a sofa, adjusted its rumpled skirts neatly, and awaited the issue of
  • events.
  • For a time events did not issue. They remained talking noisily upon the
  • great staircase. Bealby could not hear what was said, but most of what
  • was said appeared to be flat contradiction.
  • “Perchance,” whispered Bealby to himself, gathering courage, “perchance
  • we have eluded them.... A breathing space....”
  • At last a woman’s voice mingled with the others and seemed a little to
  • assuage them....
  • Then it seemed to Bealby that they were dispersing to beat the house for
  • him. “Good-night _again_ then,” said someone.
  • That puzzled him, but he decided it was a “blind.” He remained very,
  • very still.
  • He heard a clicking in the apartment—the blue parlour it was
  • called—between the study and the dining-room. Electric light?
  • Then some one came into the study. Bealby’s eye was as close to the
  • ground as he could get it. He was breathless, he moved his head with an
  • immense circumspection. The valance was translucent but not transparent,
  • below it there was a crack of vision, a strip of carpet, the castors of
  • chairs. Among these things he perceived feet—not ankles, it did not go
  • up to that, but just feet. Large flattish feet. A pair. They stood
  • still, and Bealby’s hand lighted on the hilt of his dagger.
  • The person above the feet seemed to be surveying the room or reflecting.
  • “Drunk!... Old fool’s either drunk or mad! That’s about the truth of
  • it,” said a voice.
  • Mergleson! Angry, but parroty and unmistakable.
  • The feet went across to the table and there were faint sounds of
  • refreshment, discreetly administered. Then a moment of profound
  • stillness....
  • “Ah!” said the voice at last, a voice renewed.
  • Then the feet went to the passage door, halted in the doorway. There was
  • a double click. The lights went out. Bealby was in absolute darkness.
  • Then a distant door closed and silence followed upon the dark....
  • Mr. Mergleson descended to a pantry ablaze with curiosity.
  • “The Lord Chancellor’s going dotty,” said Mr. Mergleson, replying to the
  • inevitable question. “_That’s_ what’s up.” ...
  • “I tried to save the blessed syphon,” said Mr. Mergleson, pursuing his
  • narrative, “and ’e sprang on me like a leppard. I suppose ’e thought I
  • wanted to take it away from ’im. ’E’d broke a glass already. ’_Ow_,—I
  • _don’t_ know. There it was, lying on the landing....”
  • “’Ere’s where ’e bit my ’and,” said Mr. Mergleson....
  • A curious little side-issue occurred to Thomas. “Where’s young Kicker
  • all this time?” he asked.
  • “Lord!” said Mr. Mergleson, “all them other things; they clean drove ’im
  • out of my ’ed. I suppose ’e’s up there, hiding somewhere....”
  • He paused. His eye consulted the eye of Thomas.
  • “’E’s got behind a curtain or something,” said Mr. Mergleson....
  • “Queer where ’e can ’ave got to,” said Mr. Mergleson....
  • “Can’t be bothered about ’im,” said Mr. Mergleson.
  • “I expect he’ll sneak down to ’is room when things are quiet,” said
  • Thomas, after reflection.
  • “No good going and looking for ’im now,” said Mr. Mergleson. “Things
  • upstairs,—they _got_ to settle down....”
  • But in the small hours Mr. Mergleson awakened and thought of Bealby and
  • wondered whether he was in bed. This became so great an uneasiness that
  • about the hour of dawn he got up and went along the passage to Bealby’s
  • compartment. Bealby was not there and his bed had not been slept in.
  • That sinister sense of gathering misfortunes which comes to all of us at
  • times in the small hours, was so strong in the mind of Mr. Mergleson
  • that he went on and told Thomas of this disconcerting fact. Thomas woke
  • with difficulty and rather crossly, but sat up at last, alive to the
  • gravity of Mr. Mergleson’s mood.
  • “If ’e’s found hiding about upstairs after all this upset,” said Mr.
  • Mergleson, and left the rest of the sentence to a sympathetic
  • imagination.
  • “Now it’s light,” said Mr. Mergleson after a slight pause, “I think we
  • better just go round and ’ave a look for ’im. Both of us.”
  • So Thomas clad himself provisionally, and the two man-servants went
  • upstairs very softly and began a series of furtive sweeping
  • movements—very much in the spirit of Lord Kitchener’s historical
  • sweeping movements in the Transvaal—through the stately old rooms in
  • which Bealby must be lurking....
  • § 8
  • Man is the most restless of animals. There is an incessant urgency in
  • his nature. He never knows when he is well off. And so it was that
  • Bealby’s comparative security under the sofa became presently too
  • irksome to be endured. He seemed to himself to stay there for ages, but
  • as a matter of fact, he stayed there only twenty minutes. Then with eyes
  • tempered to the darkness he first struck out an alert attentive head,
  • then crept out and remained for the space of half a minute on all fours
  • surveying the indistinct blacknesses about him.
  • Then he knelt up. Then he stood up. Then with arms extended and cautious
  • steps he began an exploration of the apartment.
  • The passion for exploration grows with what it feeds upon. Presently
  • Bealby was feeling his way into the blue parlour and then round by its
  • shuttered and curtained windows to the dining-room. His head was now
  • full of the idea of some shelter, more permanent, less pervious to
  • housemaids, than that sofa. He knew enough now of domestic routines to
  • know that upstairs in the early morning was much routed by housemaids.
  • He found many perplexing turns and corners, and finally got into the
  • dining-room fireplace where it was very dark and kicked against some
  • fire-irons. That made his heart beat fast for a time. Then groping on
  • past it, he found in the darkness what few people could have found in
  • the day, the stud that released the panel that hid the opening of the
  • way that led to the priest hole. He felt the thing open, and halted
  • perplexed. In that corner there wasn’t a ray of light. For a long time
  • he was trying to think what this opening could be, and then he concluded
  • it was some sort of back way from downstairs.... Well, anyhow it was all
  • exploring. With an extreme gingerliness he got himself through the
  • panel. He closed it almost completely behind him.
  • Careful investigation brought him to the view that he was in a narrow
  • passage of brick or stone that came in a score of paces to a spiral
  • staircase going both up and down. Up this he went, and presently
  • breathed cool night air and had a glimpse of stars through a narrow
  • slit-like window almost blocked by ivy. Then—what was very
  • disagreeable—something scampered.
  • When Bealby’s heart recovered he went on up again.
  • He came to the priest hole, a capacious cell six feet square with a
  • bench bed and a little table and chair. It had a small door upon the
  • stairs that was open and a niche cupboard. Here he remained for a time.
  • Then restlessness made him explore a cramped passage, he had to crawl
  • along it for some yards, that came presently into a curious space with
  • wood on one side and stone on the other. Then ahead, most blessed thing!
  • he saw light.
  • He went blundering toward it and then stopped appalled. From the other
  • side of this wooden wall to the right of him had come a voice.
  • “Come in!” said the voice. A rich masculine voice that seemed scarcely
  • two yards away.
  • Bealby became rigid. Then after a long interval he moved—as softly as he
  • could.
  • The voice soliloquized.
  • Bealby listened intently, and then when all was still again crept
  • forward two paces more towards the gleam. It was a peephole.
  • The unseen speaker was walking about. Bealby listened, and the sound of
  • his beating heart mingled with the pad, pad, of slippered footsteps.
  • Then with a brilliant effort his eye was at the chink. All was still
  • again. For a time he was perplexed by what he saw, a large pink shining
  • dome, against a deep greenish grey background. At the base of the dome
  • was a kind of interrupted hedge, brown and leafless....
  • Then he realized that he was looking at the top of a head and two
  • enormous eyebrows. The rest was hidden....
  • Nature surprised Bealby into a penetrating sniff.
  • “Now,” said the occupant of the room, and suddenly he was standing
  • up—Bealby saw a long hairy neck sticking out of a dressing-gown—and
  • walking to the side of the room. “I won’t stand it,” said the great
  • voice, “I won’t stand it. Ape’s foolery!”
  • Then the Lord Chancellor began rapping at the panelling about his
  • apartment.
  • “Hollow! It all sounds hollow.”
  • Only after a long interval did he resume his writing....
  • All night long that rat behind the wainscot troubled the Lord
  • Chancellor. Whenever he spoke, whenever he moved about, it was still;
  • whenever he composed himself to write it began to rustle and blunder.
  • Again and again it sniffed,—an annoying kind of sniff. At last the Lord
  • Chancellor gave up his philosophical relaxation and went to bed, turned
  • out the lights and attempted sleep, but this only intensified his sense
  • of an uneasy, sniffing presence close to him. When the light was out it
  • seemed to him that this Thing, whatever it was, instantly came into the
  • room and set the floor creaking and snapping. A Thing perpetually
  • attempting something and perpetually thwarted....
  • The Lord Chancellor did not sleep a wink. The first feeble infiltration
  • of day found him sitting up in bed, wearily wrathful.... And now surely
  • someone was going along the passage outside!
  • A great desire to hurt somebody very much seized upon the Lord
  • Chancellor. Perhaps he might hurt that dismal _farceur_ upon the
  • landing! No doubt it was Douglas sneaking back to his own room after the
  • night’s efforts.
  • The Lord Chancellor slipped on his dressing-gown of purple silk. Very
  • softly indeed did he open his bedroom door and very warily peep out. He
  • heard the soft pad of feet upon the staircase.
  • He crept across the broad passage to the beautiful old balustrading.
  • Down below he saw Mergleson—Mergleson again!—in a shameful
  • deshabille—going like a snake, like a slinking cat, like an assassin,
  • into the door of the study. Rage filled the great man’s soul. Gathering
  • up the skirts of his dressing-gown he started in a swift yet noiseless
  • pursuit.
  • He followed Mergleson through the little parlour and into the
  • dining-room, and then he saw it all! There was a panel open, and
  • Mergleson very cautiously going in. Of course! They had got at him
  • through the priest hole. They had been playing on his nerves. All night
  • they had been doing it—no doubt in relays. The whole house was in this
  • conspiracy.
  • With his eyebrows spread like the wings of a fighting cock the Lord
  • Chancellor in five vast noiseless strides had crossed the intervening
  • space and gripped the butler by his collarless shirt as he was
  • disappearing. It was like a hawk striking a sparrow. Mergleson felt
  • himself clutched, glanced over his shoulder and, seeing that fierce
  • familiar face again close to his own, pitiless, vindictive, lost all
  • sense of human dignity and yelled like a lost soul....
  • § 9
  • Sir Peter Laxton was awakened from an uneasy sleep by the opening of the
  • dressing-room door that connected his room with his wife’s.
  • He sat up astonished and stared at her white face, its pallor
  • exaggerated by the cold light of dawn.
  • “Peter,” she said, “I’m sure there’s something more going on.”
  • “Something more going on?”
  • “Something—shouting and swearing.”
  • “You don’t mean—?”
  • She nodded. “The Lord Chancellor,” she said, in an awe-stricken whisper.
  • “He’s at it again. Downstairs in the dining-room.”
  • Sir Peter seemed disposed at first to receive this quite passively. Then
  • he flashed into extravagant wrath. “I’m _damned_,” he cried, jumping
  • violently out of bed, “if I’m going to stand this! Not if he was a
  • hundred Lord Chancellors! He’s turning the place into a bally lunatic
  • asylum. _Once_—one might excuse. But to start in again.... _What’s
  • that?_”
  • They both stood still listening. Faintly yet quite distinctly came the
  • agonized cry of some imperfectly educated person,—“’Elp!”
  • “Here! Where’s my trousers?” cried Sir Peter. “He’s murdering Mergleson.
  • There isn’t a moment to lose.”
  • § 10
  • Until Sir Peter returned Lady Laxton sat quite still just as he had left
  • her on his bed, aghast.
  • She could not even pray.
  • The sun had still to rise; the room was full of that cold weak inky
  • light, light without warmth, knowledge without faith, existence without
  • courage, that creeps in before the day. She waited.... In such a mood
  • women have waited for massacre....
  • Downstairs a raucous shouting....
  • She thought of her happy childhood upon the Yorkshire wolds, before the
  • idea of week-end parties had entered her mind. The heather. The little
  • birds. Kind things. A tear ran down her cheek....
  • § 11
  • Then Sir Peter stood before her again, alive still, but breathless and
  • greatly ruffled.
  • She put her hands to her heart. She would be brave.
  • “Yes,” she said. “Tell me.”
  • “He’s as mad as a hatter,” said Sir Peter.
  • She nodded for more. She knew that.
  • “Has he—_killed_ anyone?” she whispered.
  • “He looked uncommonly like trying,” said Sir Peter.
  • She nodded, her lips tightly compressed.
  • “Says Douglas will either have to leave the house or he does.”
  • “But—Douglas!”
  • “I know, but he won’t hear a word.”
  • “But _why_ Douglas?”
  • “I tell you he’s as mad as a hatter. Got persecution mania. People
  • tapping and bells ringing under his pillow all night—that sort of
  • idea.... And furious. I tell you,—he frightened me. He was _awful_. He’s
  • given Mergleson a black eye. Hit him, you know. With his fist. Caught
  • him in the passage to the priest hole—how they got there _I_ don’t
  • know—and went for him like a madman.”
  • “But what has Douglas done?”
  • “I know. I asked him, but he won’t listen. He’s just off his head....
  • Says Douglas has got the whole household trying to work a ghost on him.
  • I tell you—he’s off his nut.”
  • Husband and wife looked at each other....
  • “Of course if Douglas didn’t mind just going off to oblige me,” said Sir
  • Peter at last....
  • “It might calm him,” he explained.... “You see, it’s all so infernally
  • awkward....”
  • “Is he back in his room?”
  • “Yes. Waiting for me to decide about Douglas. Walking up and down.”
  • For a little while their minds remained prostrate and inactive.
  • “I’d been so looking forward to the lunch,” she said with a joyless
  • smile. “The county—”
  • She could not go on.
  • “You know,” said Sir Peter, “one thing,—I’ll see to it myself. I won’t
  • have him have a single drop of liquor more. If we have to search his
  • room.”
  • “What I shall say to him at breakfast,” she said, “I don’t know.”
  • Sir Peter reflected. “There’s no earthly reason why you should be
  • brought into it at all. Your line is to know nothing about it. _Show_
  • him you know nothing about it. Ask him—ask him if he’s had a good
  • night....”
  • CHAPTER III
  • THE WANDERERS
  • § 1
  • Never had the gracious eastward face of Shonts looked more beautiful
  • than it did on the morning of the Lord Chancellor’s visit. It glowed as
  • translucent as amber lit by flames, its two towers were pillars of pale
  • gold. It looked over its slopes and parapets upon a great valley of
  • mist-barred freshness through which the distant river shone like a snake
  • of light. The south-west façade was still in the shadow, and the ivy
  • hung from it darkly greener than the greenest green. The stained-glass
  • windows of the old chapel reflected the sunrise as though lamps were
  • burning inside. Along the terrace a pensive peacock trailed his sheathed
  • splendours through the dew.
  • Amidst the ivy was a fuss of birds.
  • And presently there was pushed out from amidst the ivy at the foot of
  • the eastward tower a little brownish buff thing, that seemed as natural
  • there as a squirrel or a rabbit. It was a head,—a ruffled human head. It
  • remained still for a moment contemplating the calm spaciousness of
  • terrace and garden and countryside. Then it emerged further and rotated
  • and surveyed the house above it. Its expression was one of alert
  • caution. Its natural freshness and innocence were a little marred by an
  • enormous transverse smudge, a bar-sinister of smut, and the elfin
  • delicacy of the left ear was festooned with a cobweb—probably a genuine
  • antique. It was the face of Bealby.
  • He was considering the advisability of leaving Shonts—for good.
  • Presently his decision was made. His hands and shoulders appeared
  • following his head, and then a dusty but undamaged Bealby was running
  • swiftly towards the corner of the shrubbery. He crouched lest at any
  • moment that pursuing pack of butlers should see him and give tongue. In
  • another moment he was hidden from the house altogether, and rustling his
  • way through a thicket of budding rhododendra. After those dirty passages
  • the morning air was wonderfully sweet—but just a trifle hungry.
  • Grazing deer saw Bealby fly across the park, stared at him for a time
  • with great gentle unintelligent eyes, and went on feeding.
  • They saw him stop ever and again. He was snatching at mushrooms, that he
  • devoured forthwith as he sped on.
  • On the edge of the beech-woods he paused and glanced back at Shonts.
  • Then his eyes rested for a moment on the clump of trees through which
  • one saw a scrap of the head gardener’s cottage, a bit of the garden
  • wall....
  • A physiognomist might have detected a certain lack of self-confidence in
  • Bealby’s eyes.
  • But his spirit was not to be quelled. Slowly, joylessly perhaps, but
  • with a grave determination, he raised his hand in that prehistoric
  • gesture of the hand and face by which youth, since ever there was youth,
  • has asserted the integrity of its soul against established and
  • predominant things.
  • “_Ketch_ me!” said Bealby.
  • § 2
  • Bealby left Shonts about half-past four in the morning. He went westward
  • because he liked the company of his shadow and was amused at first by
  • its vast length. By half-past eight he had covered ten miles, and he was
  • rather bored by his shadow. He had eaten nine raw mushrooms, two green
  • apples and a quantity of unripe blackberries. None of these things
  • seemed quite at home in him. And he had discovered himself to be wearing
  • slippers. They were stout carpet slippers, but still they were
  • slippers,—and the road was telling on them. At the ninth mile the left
  • one began to give on the outer seam. He got over a stile into a path
  • that ran through the corner of a wood, and there he met a smell of
  • frying bacon that turned his very soul to gastric juice.
  • He stopped short and sniffed the air—and the air itself was sizzling.
  • “Oh, Krikey,” said Bealby, manifestly to the Spirit of the World. “This
  • is a bit too strong. I wasn’t thinking much before.”
  • Then he saw something bright yellow and bulky just over the hedge.
  • From this it was that the sound of frying came.
  • He went to the hedge, making no effort to conceal himself. Outside a
  • great yellow caravan with dainty little windows stood a largish dark
  • woman in a deerstalker hat, a short brown skirt, a large white apron and
  • spatterdashes (among other things), frying bacon and potatoes in a
  • frying pan. She was very red in the face, and the frying pan was
  • spitting at her as frying pans do at a timid cook....
  • Quite mechanically Bealby scrambled through the hedge and drew nearer
  • this divine smell. The woman scrutinized him for a moment, and then
  • blinking and averting her face went on with her cookery.
  • Bealby came quite close to her and remained, noting the bits of potato
  • that swam about in the pan, the jolly curling of the rashers, the
  • dancing of the bubbles, the hymning splash and splutter of the happy
  • fat....
  • (If it should ever fall to my lot to be cooked, may I be fried in
  • potatoes and butter. May I be fried with potatoes and good butter made
  • from the milk of the cow. God send I am spared boiling; the prison of
  • the pot, the rattling lid, the evil darkness, the greasy water....)
  • “I suppose,” said the lady prodding with her fork at the bacon, “I
  • suppose you call yourself a Boy.”
  • “Yes, miss,” said Bealby.
  • “Have you ever fried?”
  • “I could, miss.”
  • “Like this?”
  • “Better”
  • “Just lay hold of this handle—for it’s scorching the skin off my face I
  • am.” She seemed to think for a moment and added, “entirely.”
  • In silence Bealby grasped that exquisite smell by the handle, he took
  • the fork from her hand and put his hungry eager nose over the seething
  • mess. It wasn’t only bacon; there were onions, onions giving it—an
  • _edge_! It cut to the quick of appetite. He could have wept with the
  • intensity of his sensations.
  • A voice almost as delicious as the smell came out of the caravan window
  • behind Bealby’s head.
  • “_Ju_-dy!” cried the voice.
  • “Here!—I mean,—it’s here I am,” said the lady in the deerstalker.
  • “Judy—you didn’t take my stockings for your own by any chance?”
  • The lady in the deerstalker gave way to delighted horror. “Sssh,
  • Mavourneen!” she cried—she was one of that large class of amiable women
  • who are more Irish than they need be—“there’s a Boy here!”
  • § 3
  • There was indeed an almost obsequiously industrious and obliging Boy. An
  • hour later he was no longer a Boy but _the_ Boy, and three friendly
  • women were regarding him with a merited approval.
  • He had done the frying, renewed a waning fire with remarkable skill and
  • dispatch, reboiled a neglected kettle in the shortest possible time,
  • laid almost without direction a simple meal, very exactly set out
  • campstools and cleaned the frying pan marvellously. Hardly had they
  • taken their portions of that appetizing savouriness, than he had whipped
  • off with that implement, gone behind the caravan, busied himself there,
  • and returned with the pan—glittering bright. Himself if possible
  • brighter. One cheek indeed shone with an animated glow.
  • “But wasn’t there some of the bacon and stuff left?” asked the lady in
  • the deerstalker.
  • “I didn’t think it was wanted, Miss,” said Bealby. “So I cleared it up.”
  • He met understanding in her eye. He questioned her expression.
  • “Mayn’t I wash up for you, miss?” he asked to relieve the tension.
  • He washed up, swiftly and cleanly. He had never been able to wash up to
  • Mr. Mergleson’s satisfaction before, but now he did everything Mr.
  • Mergleson had ever told him. He asked where to put the things away and
  • he put them away. Then he asked politely if there was anything else he
  • could do for them. Questioned, he said he liked doing things. “You
  • haven’t,” said the lady in the deerstalker, “a taste for cleaning
  • boots?”
  • Bealby declared he had.
  • “Surely,” said a voice that Bealby adored, “’tis an angel from heaven.”
  • He had a taste for cleaning boots! This was an extraordinary thing for
  • Bealby to say. But a great change had come to him in the last half-hour.
  • He was violently anxious to do things, any sort of things, servile
  • things, for a particular person. He was in love.
  • The owner of the beautiful voice had come out of the caravan, she had
  • stood for a moment in the doorway before descending the steps to the
  • ground and the soul of Bealby had bowed down before her in instant
  • submission. Never had he seen anything so lovely. Her straight slender
  • body was sheathed in blue; fair hair, a little tinged with red, poured
  • gloriously back from her broad forehead, and she had the sweetest eyes
  • in the world. One hand lifted her dress from her feet; the other rested
  • on the lintel of the caravan door. She looked at him and smiled.
  • So for two years she had looked and smiled across the footlights to the
  • Bealby in mankind. She had smiled now on her entrance out of habit. She
  • took the effect upon Bealby as a foregone conclusion.
  • Then she had looked to make sure that everything was ready before she
  • descended.
  • “How good it smells, Judy!” she had said.
  • “I’ve had a helper,” said the woman who wore spats.
  • That time the blue-eyed lady had smiled at him quite definitely....
  • The third member of the party had appeared unobserved; the irradiations
  • of the beautiful lady had obscured her. Bealby discovered her about. She
  • was bareheaded; she wore a simple grey dress with a Norfolk jacket, and
  • she had a pretty clear white profile under black hair. She answered to
  • the name of “Winnie.” The beautiful lady was Madeleine. They made little
  • obscure jokes with each other and praised the morning ardently. “This is
  • the best place of all,” said Madeleine.
  • “All night,” said Winnie, “not a single mosquito.”
  • None of these three ladies made any attempt to conceal the sincerity of
  • their hunger or their appreciation of Bealby’s assistance. How good a
  • thing is appreciation! Here he was doing, with joy and pride and an
  • eager excellence, the very services he had done so badly under the
  • cuffings of Mergleson and Thomas....
  • § 4
  • And now Bealby, having been regarded with approval for some moments and
  • discussed in tantalizing undertones, was called upon to explain himself.
  • “Boy,” said the lady in the deerstalker, who was evidently the leader
  • and still more evidently the spokeswoman of the party, “come here.”
  • “Yes, miss.” He put down the boot he was cleaning on the caravan step.
  • “In the first place, know by these presents, I am a married woman.”
  • “Yes, miss.”
  • “And miss is not a seemly mode of address for me.”
  • “No, miss. I mean—” Bealby hung for a moment and by the happiest of
  • accidents, a scrap of his instruction at Shonts came up in his mind.
  • “No,” he said, “your—ladyship.”
  • A great light shone on the spokeswoman’s face. “Not yet, my child,” she
  • said, “not yet. He hasn’t done his duty by me. I am—a simple Mum.”
  • Bealby was intelligently silent.
  • “Say—Yes, Mum.”
  • “Yes, Mum,” said Bealby and everybody laughed very agreeably.
  • “And now,” said the lady, taking pleasure in her words, “know by these
  • presents—By the bye, what is your name?”
  • Bealby scarcely hesitated. “Dick Mal-travers, Mum,” he said and almost
  • added, “The Dauntless Daredevil of the Diamond-fields Horse,” which was
  • the second title.
  • “Dick will do,” said the lady who was called Judy, and added suddenly
  • and very amusingly: “You may keep the rest.”
  • (These were the sort of people Bealby liked. The _right_ sort.)
  • “Well, Dick, we want to know, have you ever been in service?”
  • It was sudden. But Bealby was equal to it. “Only for a day or two,
  • miss—I mean, Mum,—just to be useful.”
  • “_Were_ you useful?”
  • Bealby tried to think whether he had been, and could recall nothing but
  • the face of Thomas with the fork hanging from it. “I did my best, Mum,”
  • he said impartially.
  • “And all that is over?”
  • “Yes, Mum.”
  • “And you’re at home again and out of employment?”
  • “Yes, Mum.”
  • “Do you live near here?”
  • “No—leastways, not very far.”
  • “With your father.”
  • “Stepfather, Mum. I’m a Norfan.”
  • “Well, how would you like to come with us for a few days and help with
  • things? Seven-and-sixpence a week.”
  • Bealby’s face was eloquent.
  • “Would your stepfather object?”
  • Bealby considered. “I don’t think he would,” he said.
  • “You’d better go round and ask him.”
  • “I—suppose—yes,” he said.
  • “And get a few things.”
  • “Things, Mum?”
  • “Collars and things. You needn’t bring a great box for such a little
  • while.”
  • “Yes, Mum....”
  • He hovered rather undecidedly.
  • “Better run along now. Our man and horse will be coming presently. We
  • shan’t be able to wait for you long....”
  • Bealby assumed a sudden briskness and departed.
  • At the gate of the field he hesitated almost imperceptibly and then
  • directed his face to the Sabbath stillness of the village.
  • Perplexity corrugated his features. The stepfather’s permission
  • presented no difficulties, but it was more difficult about the luggage.
  • A voice called after him.
  • “Yes, Mum?” he said attentive and hopeful. Perhaps—somehow—they wouldn’t
  • want luggage.
  • “You’ll want Boots. You’ll have to walk by the caravan, you know. You’ll
  • want some good stout Boots.”
  • “All right, Mum,” he said with a sorrowful break in his voice. He waited
  • a few moments but nothing more came. He went on—very slowly. He had
  • forgotten about the boots.
  • That defeated him....
  • It is hard to be refused admission to Paradise for the want of a
  • hand-bag and a pair of walking-boots....
  • § 5
  • Bealby was by no means certain that he was going back to that caravan.
  • He wanted to do so quite painfully, but—
  • He’d just look a fool going back without boots and—nothing on earth
  • would reconcile him to the idea of looking a fool in the eyes of that
  • beautiful woman in blue.
  • “Dick,” he whispered to himself despondently, “Daredevil Dick!” (A more
  • miserable-looking face you never set eyes on.) “It’s all up with your
  • little schemes, Dick, my boy. You _must_ get a bag—and nothing on earth
  • will get you a bag.”
  • He paid little heed to the village through which he wandered. He knew
  • there were no bags there. Chance rather than any volition of his own
  • guided him down a side path that led to the nearly dry bed of a little
  • rivulet, and there he sat down on some weedy grass under a group of
  • willows. It was an untidy place that needed all the sunshine of the
  • morning to be tolerable; one of those places where stinging nettles take
  • heart and people throw old kettles, broken gallipots, jaded gravel,
  • grass cuttings, rusty rubbish, old boots—.
  • For a time Bealby’s eyes rested on the objects with an entire lack of
  • interest.
  • Then he was reminded of his not so very remote childhood when he had
  • found an old boot and made it into a castle....
  • Presently he got up and walked across to the rubbish heap and surveyed
  • its treasures with a quickened intelligence. He picked up a widowed boot
  • and weighed it in his hand.
  • He dropped it abruptly, turned about and hurried back into the village
  • street.
  • He had ideas, two ideas, one for the luggage and one for the boots....
  • If only he could manage it. Hope beat his great pinions in the heart of
  • Bealby.
  • Sunday! The shops were shut. Yes, that was a fresh obstacle. He’d
  • forgotten that.
  • The public-house stood bashfully open, the shy uninviting openness of
  • Sunday morning before closing time, but public-houses, alas! at all
  • hours are forbidden to little boys. And besides he wasn’t likely to get
  • what he wanted in a public-house; he wanted a shop, a general shop. And
  • here before him was the general shop—and its door ajar! His desire
  • carried him over the threshold. The Sabbatical shutters made the place
  • dark and cool, and the smell of bacon and cheese and chandleries, the
  • very spirit of grocery, calm and unhurried, was cool and Sabbatical,
  • too, as if it sat there for the day in its best clothes. And a pleasant
  • woman was talking over the counter to a thin and worried one who carried
  • a bundle.
  • Their intercourse had a flavour of emergency, and they both stopped
  • abruptly at the appearance of Bealby.
  • His desire, his craving was now so great that it had altogether subdued
  • the natural wiriness of his appearance. He looked meek, he looked good,
  • he was swimming in propitiation and tender with respect. He produced an
  • effect of being much smaller. He had got nice eyes. His movements were
  • refined and his manners perfect.
  • “Not doing business to-day, my boy,” said the pleasant woman.
  • “Oh, _please_ ’m,” he said from his heart.
  • “Sunday, you know.”
  • “Oh, _please_ ’m. If you could just give me a nold sheet of paper ’m,
  • please.”
  • “What for?” asked the pleasant woman.
  • “Just to wrap something up ’m.”
  • She reflected, and natural goodness had its way with her.
  • “A nice _big_ bit?” said the woman.
  • “Please ’m.”
  • “Would you like it brown?”
  • “Oh, _please_ ’m.”
  • “And you got some string??
  • “Only cottony stuff,” said Bealby, disembowelling a trouser pocket. “Wiv
  • knots. But I dessay I can manage.”
  • “You’d better have a bit of good string with it, my dear,” said the
  • pleasant woman, whose generosity was now fairly on the run, “Then you
  • can do your parcel up nice and tidy....”
  • § 6
  • The white horse was already in the shafts of the caravan, and William, a
  • deaf and clumsy man of uncertain age and a vast sharp nosiness, was
  • lifting in the basket of breakfast gear and grumbling in undertones at
  • the wickedness and unfairness of travelling on Sunday, when Bealby
  • returned to gladden three waiting women.
  • “Ah!” said the inconspicuous lady, “I knew he’d come.”
  • “Look at his poor little precious parsivel,” said the actress.
  • Regarded as luggage it was rather pitiful; a knobby, brown paper parcel
  • about the size—to be perfectly frank—of a tin can, two old boots and
  • some grass, very carefully folded and tied up,—and carried gingerly.
  • “But—” the lady in the deerstalker began, and then paused.
  • “Dick,” she said, as he came nearer, “where’s your boots?”
  • “Oh please, Mum,” said the dauntless one, “they was away being mended.
  • My stepfather thought perhaps you wouldn’t mind if I didn’t have boots.
  • He said perhaps I might be able to get some more boots out of my
  • salary....”
  • The lady in the deerstalker looked alarmingly uncertain and Bealby
  • controlled infinite distresses.
  • “Haven’t you got a mother, Dick?” asked the beautiful voice suddenly.
  • Its owner abounded in such spasmodic curiosities.
  • “She—last year....” Matricide is a painful business at any time. And
  • just as you see, in spite of every effort you have made, the jolliest
  • lark in the world slipping out of your reach. And the sweet voice so
  • sorry for him! So sorry! Bealby suddenly veiled his face with his elbow
  • and gave way to honourable tears....
  • A simultaneous desire to make him happy, help him to forget his loss,
  • possessed three women....
  • “That’ll be all right, Dick,” said the lady in the deerstalker, patting
  • his shoulder. “We’ll get you some boots to-morrow. And to-day you must
  • sit up beside William and spare your feet. You’ll have to go to the inns
  • with him....”
  • “It’s wonderful, the elasticity of youth,” said the inconspicuous lady
  • five minutes later. “To see that boy now, you’d never imagine he’d had a
  • sorrow in the world.”
  • “Now get up there,” said the lady who was the leader. “We shall walk
  • across the fields and join you later. You understand where you are to
  • wait for us, William?”
  • She came nearer and shouted, “You understand, William?”
  • William nodded ambiguously. “’Ent a _Vool_,” he said.
  • The ladies departed. “_You’ll_ be all right, Dick,” cried the actress
  • kindly.
  • He sat up where he had been put, trying to look as Orphan Dick as
  • possible after all that had occurred.
  • § 7
  • “Do you know the wind on the heath—have you lived the Gypsy life? Have
  • you spoken, wanderers yourselves, with ‘Romany chi and Romany chal’ on
  • the wind-swept moors at home or abroad? Have you tramped the broad
  • highways, and, at close of day, pitched your tent near a running stream
  • and cooked your supper by starlight over a fire of pinewood? Do you know
  • the dreamless sleep of the wanderer at peace with himself and all the
  • world?”
  • For most of us the answer to these questions of the Amateur Camping Club
  • is in the negative.
  • Yet every year the call of the road, the Borrovian glamour, draws away a
  • certain small number of the imaginative from the grosser comforts of a
  • complex civilization, takes them out into tents and caravans and
  • intimate communion with nature, and, incidentally, with various
  • ingenious appliances designed to meet the needs of cooking in a breeze.
  • It is an adventure to which high spirits and great expectations must be
  • brought, it is an experience in proximity which few friendships
  • survive—and altogether very great fun.
  • The life of breezy freedom resolves itself in practice chiefly into
  • washing up and an anxious search for permission to camp. One learns how
  • rich and fruitful our world can be in bystanders, and how easy it is to
  • forget essential groceries....
  • The heart of the joy of it lies in its perfect detachment. There you are
  • in the morning sunlight under the trees that overhang the road, going
  • whither you will. Everything you need you have. Your van creaks along at
  • your side. You are outside inns, outside houses, a home, a community, an
  • _imperium in imperio_. At any moment you may draw out of the traffic
  • upon the wayside grass and say, “Here—until the owner catches us at
  • it—is home!” At any time—subject to the complaisance of William and your
  • being able to find him—you may inspan and go onward. The world is all
  • before you. You taste the complete yet leisurely insouciance of the
  • snail.
  • And two of those three ladies had other satisfactions to supplement
  • their pleasures. They both adored Madeleine Philips. She was not only
  • perfectly sweet and lovely, but she was known to be so; she had that
  • most potent charm for women, prestige. They had got her all to
  • themselves. They could show now how false is the old idea that there is
  • no friendship nor conversation among women. They were full of wit and
  • pretty things for one another and snatches of song in between. And they
  • were free too from their “menfolk.” They were doing without them. Dr.
  • Bowles, the husband of the lady in the deerstalker, was away in Ireland,
  • and Mr. Geedge, the lord of the inconspicuous woman, was golfing at
  • Sandwich. And Madeleine Philips, it was understood, was only too glad to
  • shake herself free from the crowd of admirers that hovered about her
  • like wasps about honey....
  • Yet after three days each one had thoughts about the need of helpfulness
  • and more particularly about washing-up, that were better left unspoken,
  • that were indeed conspicuously unspoken beneath their merry give and
  • take, like a black and silent river flowing beneath a bridge of ivory.
  • And each of them had a curious feeling in the midst of all this fresh
  • free behaviour, as though the others were not listening sufficiently, as
  • though something of the effect of them was being wasted. Madeleine’s
  • smiles became rarer; at times she was almost impassive, and Judy
  • preserved nearly all her wit and verbal fireworks for the times when
  • they passed through villages.... Mrs. Geedge was less visibly affected.
  • She had thoughts of writing a book about it all, telling in the gayest,
  • most provocative way, full of the quietest quaintest humour, just how
  • jolly they had been. Menfolk would read it. This kept a little thin
  • smile upon her lips....
  • As an audience William was tough stuff. He pretended deafness; he never
  • looked. He did not want to look. He seemed always to be holding his nose
  • in front of his face to prevent his observation—as men pray into their
  • hats at church. But once Judy Bowles overheard a phrase or so in his
  • private soliloquy. “Pack o’ wimmin,” William was saying. “Dratted
  • petticoats. _Dang_ ’em. That’s what I say to ’um. _Dang_ ’em!”
  • As a matter of fact, he just fell short of saying it to them. But his
  • manner said it....
  • You begin to see how acceptable an addition was young Bealby to this
  • company. He was not only helpful, immensely helpful, in things material,
  • a vigorous and at first a careful washer-up, an energetic boot-polisher,
  • a most serviceable cleaner and tidier of things, but he was also belief
  • and support. Undisguisedly he thought the caravan the loveliest thing
  • going, and its three mistresses the most wonderful of people. His alert
  • eyes followed them about full of an unstinted admiration and interest;
  • he pricked his ears when Judy opened her mouth, he handed things to Mrs.
  • Geedge. He made no secret about Madeleine. When she spoke to him, he
  • lost his breath, he reddened and was embarrassed....
  • They went across the fields saying that he was the luckiest of finds. It
  • was fortunate his people had been so ready to spare him. Judy said boys
  • were a race very cruelly maligned; see how _willing_ he was! Mrs. Geedge
  • said there was something elfin about Bealby’s little face; Madeleine
  • smiled at the thought of his quaint artlessness. She knew quite clearly
  • that he’d die for her....
  • § 8
  • There was a little pause as the ladies moved away.
  • Then William spat and spoke in a note of irrational bitterness.
  • “Brasted Voolery,” said William, and then loudly and fiercely, “Cam up,
  • y’ode Runt you.”
  • At these words the white horse started into a convulsive irregular
  • redistribution of its feet, the caravan strained and quivered into
  • motion and Bealby’s wanderings as a caravanner began.
  • For a time William spoke no more, and Bealby scarcely regarded him. The
  • light of strange fortunes and deep enthusiasm was in Bealby’s eyes....
  • “One Thing,” said William, “they don’t ’ave the Sense to lock anythink
  • up—whatever.”
  • Bealby’s attention was recalled to the existence of his companion.
  • William’s face was one of those faces that give one at first the
  • impression of a solitary and very conceited nose. The other features are
  • entirely subordinated to that salient effect. One sees them later. His
  • eyes were small and uneven, his mouth apparently toothless, thin-lipped
  • and crumpled, with the upper lip falling over the other in a manner
  • suggestive of a meagre firmness mixed with appetite. When he spoke he
  • made a faint slobbering sound. “Everyfink,” he said, “behind there.”
  • He became confidential. “I been _in_ there. I larked about wiv their
  • Fings.”
  • “They got some choc’late,” he said, lusciously. “Oo Fine!”
  • “All sorts of Fings.”
  • He did not seem to expect any reply from Bealby.
  • “We going far before we meet ’em?” asked Bealby.
  • William’s deafness became apparent.
  • His mind was preoccupied by other ideas. One wicked eye came close to
  • Bealby’s face. “We going to ’ave a bit of choc’late,” he said in a wet
  • desirous voice.
  • He pointed his thumb over his shoulder at the door. “_You_ get it,” said
  • William with reassuring nods and the mouth much pursed and very oblique.
  • Bealby shook his head.
  • “It’s in a little dror, under ’er place where she sleeps.”
  • Bealby’s head-shake became more emphatic.
  • “_Yus_, I tell you,” said William.
  • “No,” said Bealby.
  • “Choc’late, I tell you,” said William, and ran the tongue of appetite
  • round the rim of his toothless mouth.
  • “Don’t want choc’late,” said Bealby, thinking of a large lump of it.
  • “Go on,” said William. “Nobody won’t see you....”
  • “_Go_ it!” said William....
  • “You’re afraid,” said William....
  • “Here, _I_’ll go,” said William, losing self-control. “You just ’old
  • these reins.”
  • Bealby took the reins. William got up and opened the door of the
  • caravan. Then Bealby realized his moral responsibility—and, leaving the
  • reins, clutched William firmly by his baggy nether garments. They were
  • elderly garments, much sat upon. “Don’t be a Vool,” said William
  • struggling. “Leago my slack.”
  • Something partially gave way, and William’s head came round to deal with
  • Bealby.
  • “What you mean pullin’ my cloes orf me?”
  • “That,”—he investigated. “Take me a Nour to sew up.”
  • “I ain’t going to steal,” shouted Bealby into the ear of William.
  • “Nobody arst you to steal—”
  • “Nor you neither,” said Bealby.
  • The caravan bumped heavily against a low garden wall, skidded a little
  • and came to rest. William sat down suddenly. The white horse, after a
  • period of confusion with its legs, tried the flavour of some overhanging
  • lilac branches and was content.
  • “Gimme those reins,” said William. “You be the Brastedest Young
  • Vool....”
  • “Sittin’ ’ere,” said William presently, “chewin’ our teeth, when we
  • might be eatin’ choc’late....”
  • “I ’ent got no use for _you_,” said William, “blowed if I ’ave....”
  • Then the thought of his injuries returned to him.
  • “I’d make you sew ’em up yourself, darned if I wount—on’y you’d go
  • running the brasted needle into me.... Nour’s work there is—by the feel
  • of it.... Mor’n nour.... Goddobe done, too.... All I got....”
  • “I’ll give you Sumpfin, you little Beace, ’fore I done wi’ you.”
  • “I wouldn’t steal ’er choc’lates,” said young Bealby, “not if I was
  • starving.”
  • “Eh?” shouted William.
  • “_Steal!_” shouted Bealby.
  • “I’ll steal ye, ’fore I done with ye,” said William. “Tearin’ my cloes
  • for me.... Oh! Cam _up_, y’old Runt. We don’t want _you_ to stop and
  • lissen. Cam _up_, I tell you!”
  • § 8
  • They found the ladies rather, it seemed, by accident than design,
  • waiting upon a sandy common rich with purple heather and bordered by
  • woods of fir and spruce. They had been waiting some time, and it was
  • clear that the sight of the yellow caravan relieved an accumulated
  • anxiety. Bealby rejoiced to see them. His soul glowed with the pride of
  • chocolate resisted and William overcome. He resolved to distinguish
  • himself over the preparation of the midday meal. It was a pleasant
  • little island of green they chose for their midday pitch, a little patch
  • of emerald turf amidst the purple, a patch already doomed to removal, as
  • a bare oblong and a pile of rolled-up turfs witnessed. This pile and a
  • little bank of heather and bramble promised shelter from the breeze, and
  • down the hill a hundred yards away was a spring and a built-up pool.
  • This spot lay perhaps fifty yards away from the high road and one
  • reached it along a rutty track which had been made by the turf cutters.
  • And overhead was the glorious sky of an English summer, with great
  • clouds like sunlit, white-sailed ships, the Constable sky. The white
  • horse was hobbled and turned out to pasture among the heather, and
  • William was sent off to get congenial provender at the nearest public
  • house. “William!” shouted Mrs. Bowles as he departed, shouting
  • confidentially into his ear, “Get your clothes mended.”
  • “Eh?” said William.
  • “Mend your clothes.”
  • “Yah! ’E did that,” said William viciously with a movement of
  • self-protection, and so went.
  • Nobody watched him go. Almost sternly they set to work upon the luncheon
  • preparation as William receded. “William,” Mrs. Bowles remarked, as she
  • bustled with the patent cooker, putting it up wrong way round so that
  • afterwards it collapsed, “William—takes offence. Sometimes I think he
  • takes offence almost too often.... Did you have any difficulty with him,
  • Dick?”
  • “It wasn’t anything, miss,” said Bealby meekly.
  • Bealby was wonderful with the firelighting, and except that he cracked a
  • plate in warming it, quite admirable as a cook. He burnt his fingers
  • twice—and liked doing it; he ate his portion with instinctive modesty on
  • the other side of the caravan and he washed up—as Mr. Mergleson had
  • always instructed him to do. Mrs. Bowles showed him how to clean knives
  • and forks by sticking them into the turf. A little to his surprise these
  • ladies lit and smoked cigarettes. They sat about and talked
  • perplexingly. Clever stuff. Then he had to get water from the
  • neighbouring brook and boil the kettle for an early tea. Madeleine
  • produced a charmingly bound little book and read in it, the other two
  • professed themselves anxious for the view from a neighbouring hill. They
  • produced their sensible spiked walking sticks such as one does not see
  • in England; they seemed full of energy. “You go,” Madeleine had said,
  • “while I and Dick stay here and make tea. I’ve walked enough to-day....”
  • So Bealby, happy to the pitch of ecstacy, first explored the wonderful
  • interior of the caravan,—there was a dresser, a stove, let-down chairs
  • and tables and all manner of things,—and then nursed the kettle to the
  • singing stage on the patent cooker while the beautiful lady reclined
  • close at hand on a rug.
  • “Dick!” she said.
  • He had forgotten he was Dick.
  • “Dick!”
  • He remembered his personality with a start. “Yes, miss!” He knelt up,
  • with a handful of twigs in his hand and regarded her.
  • “_Well_, Dick,” she said.
  • He remained in flushed adoration. There was a little pause and the lady
  • smiled at him an unaffected smile.
  • “What are you going to be, Dick, when you grow up?”
  • “I don’t know, miss. I’ve wondered.”
  • “What would you like to be?”
  • “Something abroad. Something—so that you could see things.”
  • “A soldier?”
  • “Or a sailor, miss.”
  • “A sailor sees nothing but the sea.”
  • “I’d rather be a sailor than a common soldier, miss.”
  • “You’d like to be an officer?”
  • “Yes, miss—only—”
  • “One of my very best friends is an officer,” she said, a little
  • irrelevantly it seemed to Bealby.
  • “I’d be a Norficer like a shot,” said Bealby, “if I ’ad ’arf a chance,
  • miss.”
  • “Officers nowadays,” she said, “have to be very brave, able men.”
  • “I know, miss,” said Bealby modestly....
  • The fire required attention for a little while....
  • The lady turned over on her elbow. “What do you think you are _likely_
  • to be, Dick!” she asked.
  • He didn’t know.
  • “What sort of man is your stepfather?”
  • Bealby looked at her. “He isn’t much,” he said.
  • “What is he?”
  • Bealby hadn’t the slightest intention of being the son of a gardener.
  • “’E’s a law-writer.”
  • “What! in that village.”
  • “’E ’as to stay there for ’is ’ealth, miss,” he said. “Every summer. ’Is
  • ’ealth is very pre-precocious, miss....”
  • He fed his fire with a few judiciously administered twigs.
  • “What was your own father, Dick?”
  • With that she opened a secret door in Bealby’s imagination. All
  • stepchildren have those dreams. With him they were so frequent and vivid
  • that they had long since become a kind of second truth. He coloured a
  • little and answered with scarcely an interval for reflection. “’E passed
  • as Mal-travers,” he said.
  • “Wasn’t that his name?”
  • “I don’t rightly know, miss. There was always something kep’ from me. My
  • mother used to say, ‘Artie,’ she used to say: ‘there’s things that some
  • day you must know, things that concern you. Things about your farver.
  • But poor as we are now and struggling.... Not yet.... Some day you shall
  • know truly—_who you are_.’ That was ’ow she said it, miss.”
  • “And she died before she told you?”
  • He had almost forgotten that he had killed his mother that very morning.
  • “Yes, miss,” he said.
  • She smiled at him and something in her smile made him blush hotly. For a
  • moment he could have believed she understood. And indeed, she did
  • understand, and it amused her to find this boy doing—what she herself
  • had done at times—what indeed she felt it was still in her to do. She
  • felt that most delicate of sympathies, the sympathy of one rather
  • over-imaginative person for another. But her next question dispelled his
  • doubt of her though it left him red and hot. She asked it with a
  • convincing simplicity.
  • “Have you any idea, Dick, have you any guess or suspicion, I mean, who
  • it is you really are?”
  • “I wish I had, miss,” he said. “I suppose it doesn’t matter, really—but
  • one can’t help wondering....”
  • How often he had wondered in his lonely wanderings through that dear
  • city of day-dreams where all the people one knows look out of windows as
  • one passes and the roads are paved with pride! How often had he decided
  • and changed and decided again!
  • § 9
  • Now suddenly a realization of intrusion shattered this conversation. A
  • third person stood over the little encampment, smiling mysteriously and
  • waving a cleek in a slow hieratic manner through the air.
  • “De licious lill’ corn’,” said the newcomer in tones of benediction.
  • He met their enquiring eyes with a luxurious smile, “Licious,” he said,
  • and remained swaying insecurely and failing to express some imperfectly
  • apprehended deep meaning by short peculiar movements of the cleek.
  • He was obviously a golfer astray from some adjacent course—and he had
  • lunched.
  • “Mighty Join you,” he said, and then very distinctly in a full large
  • voice, “Miss Malleleine Philps.” There are the penalties of a public and
  • popular life.
  • “He’s _drunk_,” the lady whispered. “Get him to go away, Dick. I can’t
  • endure drunken men.”
  • She stood up and Bealby stood up. He advanced in front of her, slowly
  • with his nose in the air, extraordinarily like a small terrier smelling
  • at a strange dog.
  • “I said Mighty Join you,” the golfer repeated. His voice was richly
  • excessive. He was a big heavy man with a short-cropped moustache, a
  • great deal of neck and dewlap and a solemn expression.
  • “Prup. Be’r. Introzuze m’self,” he remarked. He tried to indicate
  • himself by waving his hand towards himself, but finally abandoned the
  • attempt as impossible. “Ma’ Goo’ Soch’l Poshishun,” he said.
  • Bealby had a disconcerting sense of retreating footsteps behind him. He
  • glanced over his shoulder and saw Miss Philips standing at the foot of
  • the steps that led up to the fastnesses of the caravan. “Dick,” she
  • cried with a sharp note of alarm in her voice, “get rid of that man.”
  • A moment after Bealby heard the door shut and a sound of a key in its
  • lock. He concealed his true feelings by putting his arms akimbo,
  • sticking his legs wider apart and contemplating the task before him with
  • his head a little on one side. He was upheld by the thought that the
  • yellow caravan had a window looking upon him....
  • The newcomer seemed to consider the ceremony of introduction completed.
  • “_I_ done care for goff,” he said, almost vaingloriously.
  • He waved his cleek to express his preference. “Natua,” he said with a
  • satisfaction that bordered on fatuity.
  • He prepared to come down from the little turfy crest on which he stood
  • to the encampment.
  • “’Ere!” said Bealby. “This is Private.”
  • The golfer indicated by solemn movements of the cleek that this was
  • understood but that other considerations overrode it.
  • “You—You got to go!” cried Bealby in a breathless squeak. “You get out
  • of here.”
  • The golfer waved an arm as who should say, “You do not understand, but I
  • forgive you,” and continued to advance towards the fire. And then
  • Bealby, at the end of his tact, commenced hostilities.
  • He did so because he felt he had to do something, and he did not know
  • what else to do.
  • “Wan’ nothin’ but frenly conversation sushus custm’ry webred peel,” the
  • golfer was saying, and then a large fragment of turf hit him in the
  • neck, burst all about him and stopped him abruptly.
  • He remained for some lengthy moments too astonished for words. He was
  • not only greatly surprised, but he chose to appear even more surprised
  • than he was. In spite of the brown-black mould upon his cheek and brow
  • and a slight displacement of his cap, he achieved a sort of dignity. He
  • came slowly to a focus upon Bealby, who stood by the turf pile grasping
  • a second missile. The cleek was extended sceptre-wise.
  • “Replace the—Divot.”
  • “You go orf,” said Bealby. “I’ll chuck it if you don’t. I tell you
  • fair.”
  • “Replace the—DIVOT,” roared the golfer again in a voice of extraordinary
  • power.
  • “You—you go!” said Bealby.
  • “Am I t’ask you. Third time. Reshpect—Roos.... Replace the Divot.”
  • It struck him fully in the face.
  • He seemed to emerge through the mould. He was blinking but still
  • dignified. “Tha’—was intentional,” he said.
  • He seemed to gather himself together....
  • Then suddenly and with a surprising nimbleness he discharged himself at
  • Bealby. He came with astonishing swiftness. He got within a foot of him.
  • Well, it was for Bealby that he had learnt to dodge in the village
  • playground. He went down under the golfer’s arm and away round the end
  • of the stack, and the golfer with his force spent in concussion remained
  • for a time clinging to the turf pile and apparently trying to remember
  • how he got there. Then he was reminded of recent occurrences by a shrill
  • small voice from the other side of the stack.
  • “You gow away!” said the voice. “Can’t you see you’re annoying a lady?
  • You gow away.”
  • “Nowish—’noy anyone. Pease wall wirl.”
  • But this was subterfuge. He meant to catch that boy. Suddenly and rather
  • brilliantly he turned the flank of the turf pile and only a couple of
  • loose turfs at the foot of the heap upset his calculations. He found
  • himself on all fours on ground from which it was difficult to rise. But
  • he did not lose heart. “Boy—hic—scow,” he said, and became for a second
  • rush a nimble quadruped.
  • Again he got quite astonishingly near to Bealby, and then in an instant
  • was on his feet and running across the encampment after him. He
  • succeeded in kicking over the kettle, and the patent cooker, without any
  • injury to himself or loss of pace, and succumbed only to the sharp turn
  • behind the end of the caravan and the steps. He hadn’t somehow thought
  • of the steps. So he went down rather heavily. But now the spirit of a
  • fine man was roused. Regardless of the scream from inside that had
  • followed his collapse, he was up and in pursuit almost instantly. Bealby
  • only escaped the swiftness of his rush by jumping the shafts and going
  • away across the front of the caravan to the turf pile again. The golfer
  • tried to jump the shafts too, but he was not equal to that. He did in a
  • manner jump. But it was almost as much diving as jumping. And there was
  • something in it almost like the curvetting of a Great Horse....
  • When Bealby turned at the crash, the golfer was already on all fours
  • again and trying very busily to crawl out between the shaft and the
  • front wheel. He would have been more successful in doing this if he had
  • not begun by putting his arm through the wheel. As it was, he was trying
  • to do too much; he was trying to crawl out at two points at once and
  • getting very rapidly annoyed at his inability to do so. The caravan was
  • shifting slowly forward....
  • It was manifest to Bealby that getting this man to go was likely to be a
  • much more lengthy business than he had supposed.
  • He surveyed the situation for a moment, and then realizing the
  • entanglement of his opponent, he seized a camp-stool by one leg, went
  • round by the steps and attacked the prostrate enemy from the rear with
  • effectual but inconclusive fury. He hammered....
  • “Steady on, young man,” said a voice, and he was seized from behind. He
  • turned—to discover himself in the grip of a second golfer....
  • _Another!_ Bealby fought in a fury of fear....
  • He bit an arm—rather too tweedy to feel much—and got in a couple of
  • shinners—alas! that they were only slippered shinners!—before he was
  • overpowered....
  • A cuffed, crumpled, disarmed and panting Bealby found himself watching
  • the careful extraction of the first golfer from the front wheel. Two
  • friends assisted that gentleman with a reproachful gentleness, and his
  • repeated statements that he was all right seemed to reassure them
  • greatly. Altogether there were now four golfers in the field, counting
  • the pioneer.
  • “He was after this devil of a boy,” said the one who held Bealby.
  • “Yes, but how did he get here?” asked the man who was gripping Bealby.
  • “Feel better now?” said the third, helping the first comer to his
  • uncertain feet. “Let me have your cleek o, man.... You won’t want your
  • cleek....”
  • Across the heather, lifting their heads a little, came Mrs. Bowles and
  • Mrs. Geedge, returning from their walk. They were wondering whoever
  • their visitors could be.
  • And then like music after a dispute came Madeleine Philips, a beautiful
  • blue-robed thing, coming slowly with a kind of wonder on her face, out
  • of the caravan and down the steps. Instinctively everybody turned to
  • her. The drunkard with a gesture released himself from his supporter and
  • stood erect. His cap was replaced upon him—obliquely. His cleek had been
  • secured.
  • “I heard a noise,” said Madeleine, lifting her pretty chin and speaking
  • in her sweetest tones. She looked her enquiries....
  • She surveyed the three sober men with a practised eye. She chose the
  • tallest, a fair, serious-looking young man standing conveniently at the
  • drunkard’s elbow.
  • “Will you please take your friend away,” she said, indicating the
  • offender with her beautiful white hand.
  • “Simly,” he said in a slightly subdued voice, “simly coring.”
  • Everybody tried for a moment to understand him.
  • “Look here, old man, you’ve got no business here,” said the fair young
  • man. “You’d better come back to the club house.”
  • The drunken man stuck to his statement. “Simly coring,” he said a little
  • louder.
  • “I _think_,” said a little bright-eyed man with a very cheerful yellow
  • vest, “I _think_ he’s apologizing. I _hope_ so.”
  • The drunken man nodded his head. That among other matters.
  • The tall young man took his arm, but he insisted on his point. “Simly
  • coring,” he said with emphasis. “If—if—done _wan’_ me to cor. Notome.
  • Nottot.... Mean’ say. Nottot tat-tome. Nottotome. Orny way—sayin’
  • not-ome. No wish ’trude. No wish ’all.”
  • “Well, then, you see, you’d better come away.”
  • “I _ars’_ you—are you _tome_? Miss—Miss Pips.” He appealed to Miss
  • Philips.
  • “If you’d answer him—” said the tall young man.
  • “No, sir,” she said with great dignity and the pretty chin higher than
  • ever. “I am _not_ at home.”
  • “Nuthin’ more t’ say then,” said the drunken man, and with a sudden
  • stoicism he turned away.
  • “Come,” he said, submitting to support.
  • “Simly orny arfnoon cor,” he said generally and permitted himself to be
  • led off.
  • “Orny frenly cor....”
  • For some time he was audible as he receded, explaining in a rather
  • condescending voice the extreme social correctness of his behaviour.
  • Just for a moment or so there was a slight tussle, due to his desire to
  • return and leave cards....
  • He was afterwards seen to be distributing a small handful of visiting
  • cards amidst the heather with his free arm, rather in the manner of a
  • paper chase—but much more gracefully....
  • Then decently and in order he was taken out of sight....
  • § 10
  • Bealby had been unostentatiously released by his captor as soon as Miss
  • Philips appeared, and the two remaining golfers now addressed themselves
  • to the three ladies in regret and explanation.
  • The man who had held Bealby was an aquiline grey-clad person with a
  • cascade moustache and wrinkled eyes, and for some obscure reason he
  • seemed to be amused; the little man in the yellow vest, however, was
  • quite earnest and serious enough to make up for him. He was one of those
  • little fresh-coloured men whose faces stick forward openly. He had open
  • projecting eyes, an open mouth, his cheeks were frank to the pitch of
  • ostentation, his cap was thrust back from his exceptionally open
  • forehead. He had a chest and a stomach. There, too, he held out. He
  • would have held out anything. His legs leant forward from the feet. It
  • was evidently impossible for a man of his nature to be anything but
  • clean shaved....
  • “Our fault entirely,” he said. “Ought to have looked after him. Can’t
  • say how sorry and ashamed we are. Can’t say how sorry we are he caused
  • you any inconvenience.”
  • “Of course,” said Mrs. Bowles, “our boy-servant ought not to have pelted
  • him.”
  • “He didn’t exactly _pelt_ him, dear,” said Madeleine....
  • “Well, anyhow our friend ought not to have been off his chain. It was
  • our affair to look after him and we didn’t....
  • “You see,” the open young man went on, with the air of lucid
  • explanation, “he’s our worst player. And he got round in a hundred and
  • twenty-seven. And beat—somebody. And—it’s upset him. It’s not a bit of
  • good disguising that we’ve been letting him drink.... We have. To begin
  • with, we encouraged him.... We oughtn’t to have let him go. But we
  • thought a walk alone might do him good. And some of us were a bit off
  • him. Fed up rather. You see he’d been singing, would go on singing....”
  • He went on to propitiations. “Anything the club can do to show how we
  • regret.... If you would like to pitch—later on in our rough beyond the
  • pinewoods.... You’d find it safe and secluded.... Custodian—most civil
  • man. Get you water or anything you wanted. Especially after all that has
  • happened....”
  • Bealby took no further part in these concluding politenesses. He had a
  • curious feeling in his mind that perhaps he had not managed this affair
  • quite so well as he might have done. He ought to have been more tactful
  • like, more persuasive. He was a fool to have started chucking.... Well,
  • well. He picked up the overturned kettle and went off down the hill to
  • get water....
  • What had she thought of him?...
  • In the meantime one can at least boil kettles.
  • § 11
  • One consequence of this little incident of the rejoicing golfer was that
  • the three ladies were no longer content to dismiss William and Bealby at
  • nightfall and sleep unprotected in the caravan. And this time their
  • pitch was a lonely one with only the golf club house within call. They
  • were inclined even to distrust the golf club. So it was decided, to his
  • great satisfaction, that Bealby should have a certain sleeping sack Mrs.
  • Bowles had brought with her and that he should sleep therein between the
  • wheels.
  • This sleeping sack was to have been a great feature of the expedition,
  • but when it came to the test Judy could not use it. She had not
  • anticipated that feeling of extreme publicity the open air gives one at
  • first. It was like having all the world in one’s bedroom. Every night
  • she had relapsed into the caravan.
  • Bealby did not mind what they did with him so long as it meant sleeping.
  • He had had a long day of it. He undressed sketchily and wriggled into
  • the nice woolly bag and lay for a moment listening to the soft bumpings
  • that were going on overhead. _She_ was there. He had the instinctive
  • confidence of our sex in women, and here were three of them. He had a
  • vague idea of getting out of his bag again and kissing the underside of
  • the van that held this dear beautiful creature....
  • He didn’t....
  • Such a lot of things had happened that day—and the day before. He had
  • been going without intermission, it seemed now for endless hours. He
  • thought of trees, roads, dew-wet grass, frying-pans, pursuing packs of
  • gigantic butlers hopelessly at fault,—no doubt they were hunting
  • now—chinks and crannies, tactless missiles flying, bursting, missiles it
  • was vain to recall. He stared for a few seconds through the wheel spokes
  • at the dancing, crackling fire of pine-cones which it had been his last
  • duty to replenish, stared and blinked much as a little dog might do and
  • then he had slipped away altogether into the world of dreams....
  • § 12
  • In the morning he was extraordinarily hard to wake....
  • “Is it after sleeping all day ye’d be?” cried Judy Bowles, who was
  • always at her most Irish about breakfast time.
  • CHAPTER IV
  • THE UNOBTRUSIVE PARTING
  • § 1
  • Monday was a happy day for Bealby.
  • The caravan did seventeen miles and came to rest at last in a sloping
  • field outside a cheerful little village set about a green on which was a
  • long tent professing to be a theatre.... At the first stopping-place
  • that possessed a general shop Mrs. Bowles bought Bealby a pair of boots.
  • Then she had a bright idea. “Got any pocket money, Dick?” she asked.
  • She gave him half a crown, that is to say she gave him two shillings and
  • sixpence, or five sixpences or thirty pennies—according as you choose to
  • look at it—in one large undivided shining coin.
  • Even if he had not been in love, here surely was incentive to a generous
  • nature to help and do distinguished services. He dashed about doing
  • things. The little accident on Sunday had warned him to be careful of
  • the plates, and the only flaw upon a perfect day’s service was the
  • dropping of an egg on its way to the frying pan for supper. It remained
  • where it fell and there presently he gave it a quiet burial. There was
  • nothing else to be done with it....
  • All day long at intervals Miss Philips smiled at him and made him do
  • little services for her. And in the evening, after the custom of her
  • great profession when it keeps holiday, she insisted on going to the
  • play. She said it would be the loveliest fun. She went with Mrs. Bowles
  • because Mrs. Geedge wanted to sit quietly in the caravan and write down
  • a few little things while they were still fresh in her mind. And it
  • wasn’t in the part of Madeleine Philips not to insist that both William
  • and Bealby must go too; she gave them each a shilling—though the prices
  • were sixpence, threepence, two-pence and a penny—and Bealby saw his
  • first real play.
  • It was called _Brothers in Blood, or the Gentleman Ranker_. There was a
  • poster—which was only very slightly justified by the performance—of a
  • man in khaki with a bandaged head proposing to sell his life dearly over
  • a fallen comrade.
  • One went to the play through an open and damaged field gate and across
  • trampled turf. Outside the tent were two paraffin flares illuminating
  • the poster and a small cluster of the impecunious young. Within on grass
  • that was worn and bleached were benches, a gathering audience, a piano
  • played by an off-hand lady, and a drop scene displaying the Grand Canal,
  • Venice. The Grand Canal was infested by a crowded multitude of zealous
  • and excessive reflections of the palaces above and by peculiar
  • crescentic black boats floating entirely out of water and having no
  • reflections at all. The off-hand lady gave a broad impression of the
  • wedding march in Lohengrin, and the back seats assisted by a sort of
  • gastric vocalization called humming and by whistling between the teeth.
  • Madeleine Philips evidently found it tremendous fun, even before the
  • curtain rose.
  • And then—illusion....
  • The scenery was ridiculous; it waved about, the actors and actresses
  • were surely the most pitiful of their tribe and every invention in the
  • play impossible, but the imagination of Bealby, like the loving kindness
  • of God, made no difficulties; it rose and met and embraced and gave life
  • to all these things. It was a confused story in the play, everybody was
  • more or less somebody else all the way through, and it got more confused
  • in Bealby’s mind, but it was clear from the outset that there was vile
  • work afoot, nets spread and sweet simple people wronged. And never were
  • sweet and simple people quite so sweet and simple. There was the
  • wrongful brother who was weak and wicked and the rightful brother who
  • was vindictively, almost viciously, good, and there was an ingrained
  • villain who was a baronet, a man who wore a frock coat and a silk hat
  • and carried gloves and a stick in every scene and upon all
  • occasions—that sort of man. He looked askance, always. There was a dear
  • simple girl, with a vast sweet smile, who was loved according to their
  • natures by the wrongful and the rightful brother, and a large wicked
  • red-clad, lip-biting woman whose passions made the crazy little stage
  • quiver. There was a comic butler—very different stuff from old
  • Mergleson—who wore an evening coat and plaid trousers and nearly choked
  • Bealby. Why weren’t all butlers like that? Funny. And there were
  • constant denunciations. Always there were denunciations going on or
  • denunciations impending. That took Bealby particularly. Never surely in
  • all the world were bad people so steadily and thoroughly scolded and
  • told what. Everybody hissed them; Bealby hissed them. And when they were
  • told what, he applauded. And yet they kept on with their wickedness to
  • the very curtain. They retired—askance to the end. Foiled but pursuing.
  • “A time will come,” they said.
  • There was a moment in the distresses of the heroine when Bealby dashed
  • aside a tear. And then at last most wonderfully it all came right. The
  • company lined up and hoped that Bealby was satisfied. Bealby wished he
  • had more hands. His heart seemed to fill his body. Oh _prime! prime!..._
  • And out he came into the sympathetic night. But he was no longer a
  • trivial Bealby; his soul was purged, he was a strong and silent man,
  • ready to explode into generous repartee or nerve himself for high
  • endeavour. He slipped off in the opposite direction from the caravan
  • because he wanted to be alone for a time and _feel_. He did not want to
  • jar upon a sphere of glorious illusion that had blown up in his mind
  • like a bubble....
  • He was quite sure that he had been wronged. Not to be wronged is to
  • forego the first privilege of goodness. He had been deeply wronged by a
  • plot,—all those butlers were in the plot or why should they have chased
  • him,—he was much older than he really was, it had been kept from him,
  • and in truth he was a rightful earl. “Earl Shonts,” he whispered; and
  • indeed, why not? And Madeleine too had been wronged; she had been
  • reduced to wander in this uncomfortable caravan; this Gipsy Queen; she
  • had been brought to it by villains, the same villains who had wronged
  • Bealby....
  • Out he went into the night, the kindly consenting summer night, where
  • there is nothing to be seen or heard that will contradict these
  • delicious wonderful persuasions.
  • He was so full of these dreams that he strayed far away along the dark
  • country lanes and had at last the utmost difficulty in finding his way
  • back to the caravan. And when ultimately he got back after hours and
  • hours of heroic existence it did not even seem that they had missed him.
  • It did not seem that he had been away half an hour.
  • § 2
  • Tuesday was not so happy a day for Bealby as Monday.
  • Its shadows began when Mrs. Bowles asked him in a friendly tone when it
  • was clean-collar day.
  • He was unready with his answer.
  • “And don’t you ever use a hair brush, Dick?” she asked. “I’m sure now
  • there’s one in your parcel.”
  • “I do use it _sometimes_, Mum,” he admitted.
  • “And I’ve never detected you with a toothbrush yet. Though that perhaps
  • is extreme. And Dick—soap? I think you’d better be letting me give you a
  • cake of soap.”
  • “I’d be very much obliged, Mum.”
  • “I hardly dare hint, Dick, at a clean handkerchief. Such things are
  • known.”
  • “If you wouldn’t mind—when I’ve got the breakfast things done, Mum....”
  • The thing worried him all through breakfast. He had not
  • expected—personalities from Mrs. Bowles. More particularly personalities
  • of this kind. He felt he had to think hard.
  • He affected modesty after he had cleared away breakfast and carried off
  • his little bundle to a point in the stream which was masked from the
  • encampment by willows. With him he also brought that cake of soap. He
  • began by washing his handkerchief, which was bad policy because that
  • left him no dry towel but his jacket. He ought, he perceived, to have
  • secured a dish-cloth or a newspaper. (This he must remember on the next
  • occasion.) He did over his hands and the more exposed parts of his face
  • with soap and jacket. Then he took off and examined his collar. It
  • certainly was pretty bad....
  • “Why!” cried Mrs. Bowles when he returned, “that’s still the same
  • collar.”
  • “They all seem to’ve got crumpled ’m,” said Bealby.
  • “But are they all as dirty?”
  • “I ’ad some blacking in my parcel,” said Bealby, “and it got loose, Mum.
  • I’ll have to get another collar when we come to a shop.”
  • It was a financial sacrifice, but it was the only way, and when they
  • came to the shop Bealby secured a very nice collar indeed, high with
  • pointed turn-down corners, so that it cut his neck all round, jabbed him
  • under the chin and gave him a proud upcast carriage of the head that led
  • to his treading upon and very completely destroying a stray plate while
  • preparing lunch. But it was more of a man’s collar, he felt, than
  • anything he had ever worn before. And it cost sixpence halfpenny, six
  • dee and a half.
  • (I should have mentioned that while washing up the breakfast things he
  • had already broken the handle off one of the breakfast cups. Both these
  • accidents deepened the cloud upon his day.)
  • And then there was the trouble of William. William having meditated upon
  • the differences between them for a day had now invented an activity. As
  • Bealby sat beside him behind the white horse he was suddenly and
  • frightfully pinched. _Gee!_ One wanted to yelp.
  • “Choc’late,” said William through his teeth and very very savagely.
  • “_Now_ then.”
  • After William had done that twice Bealby preferred to walk beside the
  • caravan. Thereupon William whipped up the white horse and broke records
  • and made all the crockery sing together and forced the pace until he was
  • spoken to by Mrs. Bowles....
  • It was upon a Bealby thus depressed and worried that the rumour of
  • impending “men-folk” came. It began after the party had stopped for
  • letters at a village post office; there were not only letters but a
  • telegram, that Mrs. Bowles read with her spats far apart and her head on
  • one side. “Ye’d like to know about it,” she said waggishly to Miss
  • Philips, “and you just shan’t.”
  • She then went into her letters.
  • “You’ve got some news,” said Mrs. Geedge.
  • “I have that,” said Mrs. Bowles, and not a word more could they get from
  • her....
  • “I’ll keep my news no longer,” said Mrs. Bowles, lighting her cigarette
  • after lunch as Bealby hovered about clearing away the banana skins and
  • suchlike vestiges of dessert. “To-morrow night as ever is, if so be we
  • get to Winthorpe-Sutbury, there’ll be Men among us.”
  • “But Tom’s not coming,” said Mrs. Geedge.
  • “He asked Tim to tell me to tell you.”
  • “And you’ve kept it these two hours, Judy.”
  • “For your own good and peace of mind. But now the murther’s out. Come
  • they will, your Man and my Man, pretending to a pity because they can’t
  • do without us. But like the self-indulgent monsters they are, they must
  • needs stop at some grand hotel, Redlake he calls it, the Royal, on the
  • hill above Winthorpe-Sutbury. The Royal! The very name describes it.
  • Can’t you see the lounge, girls, with its white cane chairs? And
  • saddlebacks! No other hotel it seems is good enough for them, and we if
  • you please are asked to go in and have—what does the man call it—the
  • ‘comforts of decency’—and let the caravan rest for a bit.”
  • “Tim promised me I should run wild as long as I chose,” said Mrs.
  • Geedge, looking anything but wild.
  • “They’re after thinking we’ve had enough of it,” said Mrs. Bowles.
  • “It sounds like that.”
  • “Sure I’d go on like this for ever,” said Judy. “’Tis the Man and the
  • House and all of it that oppresses me. Vans for Women....”
  • “Let’s not go to Winthorpe-Sutbury,” said Madeleine.
  • (The first word of sense Bealby had heard.)
  • “Ah!” said Mrs. Bowles archly, “who knows but what there’ll be a Man for
  • you? Some sort of Man anyhow.”
  • (Bealby thought that a most improper remark.)
  • “I want no man.”
  • “Ah!”
  • “Why do you say _Ah_ like that?”
  • “Because I mean _Ah_ like that.”
  • “Meaning?”
  • “Just that.”
  • Miss Philips eyed Mrs. Bowles and Mrs. Bowles eyed Miss Philips.
  • “Judy,” she said, “you’ve got something up your sleeve.”
  • “Where it’s perfectly comfortable,” said Mrs. Bowles.
  • And then quite maddeningly, she remarked, “Will you be after washing up
  • presently, Dick?” and looked at him with a roguish quiet over her
  • cigarette. It was necessary to disabuse her mind at once of the idea
  • that he had been listening. He took up the last few plates and went off
  • to the washing place by the stream. All the rest of that conversation
  • _had_ to be lost.
  • Except that as he came back for the Hudson’s soap he heard Miss Philips
  • say, “Keep your old Men. I’ll just console myself with Dick, my dears.
  • Making such a Mystery!”
  • To which Mrs. Bowles replied darkly, “She _little_ knows....”
  • A kind of consolation was to be got from that.... But what was it she
  • little knew?...
  • § 3
  • The men-folk when they came were nothing so terrific to the sight as
  • Bealby had expected. And thank Heaven there were only two of them and
  • each assigned. Something he perceived was said about someone else, he
  • couldn’t quite catch what, but if there was to have been someone else,
  • at any rate there now wasn’t. Professor Bowles was animated and Mr.
  • Geedge was gracefully cold, they kissed their wives but not offensively,
  • and there was a chattering pause while Bealby walked on beside the
  • caravan. They were on the bare road that runs along the high ridge above
  • Winthorpe-Sutbury, and the men had walked to meet them from some hotel
  • or other—Bealby wasn’t clear about that—by the golf links. Judy was the
  • life and soul of the encounter, and all for asking the men what they
  • meant by intruding upon three independent women who, sure-alive, could
  • very well do without them. Professor Bowles took her pretty calmly, and
  • seemed on the whole to admire her.
  • Professor Bowles was a compact little man wearing spectacles with
  • alternative glasses, partly curved, partly flat; he was hairy and
  • dressed in that sort of soft tweedy stuff that ravels out—he seemed to
  • have been sitting among thorns—and baggy knickerbockers with straps and
  • very thick stockings and very sensible, open air, in fact quite
  • mountainous, boots. And yet though he was short and stout and active he
  • had a kind of authority about him, and it was clear that for all her
  • persuasiveness his wife merely ran over him like a creeper without
  • making any great difference to him. “I’ve found,” he said, “the perfect
  • place for your encampment.” She had been making suggestions. And
  • presently he left the ladies and came hurrying after the caravan to take
  • control.
  • He was evidently a very controlling person.
  • “Here, you get down,” he said to William. “That poor beast’s got enough
  • to pull without _you_.”
  • And when William mumbled he said, “Hey?” in such a shout that William
  • for ever after held his peace.
  • “Where d’you come from, you boy, you?” he asked suddenly, and Bealby
  • looked to Mrs. Bowles to explain.
  • “Great silly collar you’ve got,” said the Professor, interrupting her
  • reply. “Boy like this ought to wear a wool shirt. Dirty too. Take it
  • off, boy. It’s choking you. Don’t you _feel_ it?”
  • Then he went on to make trouble about the tackle William had rigged to
  • contain the white horse.
  • “This harness makes me sick,” said Professor Bowles. “It’s worse than
  • Italy....”
  • “Ah!” he cried and suddenly darted off across the turf, going
  • inelegantly and very rapidly, with peculiar motions of the head and neck
  • as he brought first the flat and then the curved surface of his glasses
  • into play. Finally he dived into the turf, remained scrabbling on all
  • fours for a moment or so, became almost still for the fraction of a
  • minute and then got up and returned to his wife, holding in an exquisite
  • manner something that struggled between his finger and his thumb.
  • “That’s the third to-day,” he said, triumphantly. “They swarm here. It’s
  • a migration.”
  • Then he resumed his penetrating criticism of the caravan outfit.
  • “That boy,” he said suddenly with his glasses oblique, “hasn’t taken off
  • his collar yet.”
  • Bealby revealed the modest secrets of his neck and pocketed the
  • collar....
  • Mr. Geedge did not appear to observe Bealby. He was a man of the
  • super-aquiline type with a nose like a rudder, he held his face as if it
  • was a hatchet in a procession, and walked with the dignity of a man of
  • honour. You could see at once he was a man of honour. Inflexibly,
  • invincibly, he was a man of honour. You felt that anywhen, in a fire, in
  • an earthquake, in a railway accident when other people would be running
  • about and doing things he would have remained—a man of honour. It was
  • his pride rather than his vanity to be mistaken for Sir Edward Grey. He
  • now walked along with Miss Philips and his wife behind the disputing
  • Bowleses, and discoursed in deep sonorous tones about the healthiness of
  • healthy places and the stifling feeling one had in towns when there was
  • no air.
  • § 4
  • The Professor was remarkably active when at last the point he had
  • chosen for the encampment was reached. Bealby was told to “look alive”
  • twice, and William was assigned to his genus and species; “The man’s
  • an absolute idiot,” was the way the Professor put it. William just
  • shot a glance at him over his nose. The place certainly commanded a
  • wonderful view. It was a turfy bank protected from the north and south
  • by bushes of yew and the beech-bordered edge of a chalk pit; it was
  • close beside the road, a road which went steeply down the hill into
  • Winthorpe-Sutbury, with that intrepid decision peculiar to the
  • hill-roads of the south of England. It looked indeed as though you
  • could throw the rinse of your teacups into the Winthorpe-Sutbury
  • street; as if you could jump and impale yourself upon the church
  • spire. The hills bellied out east and west and carried hangers, and
  • then swept round to the west in a long level succession of
  • projections, a perspective that merged at last with the general
  • horizon of hilly bluenesses, amidst which Professor Bowles insisted
  • upon a “sapphire glimpse” of sea. “The Channel,” said Professor
  • Bowles, as though that made it easier for them. Only Mr. Geedge
  • refused to see even that mitigated version of the sea. There was
  • something perhaps bluish and level, but he was evidently not going to
  • admit it was sea until he had paddled in it and tested it in every way
  • known to him....
  • “Good _Lord_!” cried the Professor. “What’s the man doing now?”
  • William stopped the struggles and confidential discouragements he was
  • bestowing upon the white horse and waited for a more definite reproach.
  • “Putting the caravan alongside to the sun! Do you think it will ever get
  • cool again? And think of the blaze of the sunset—through the glass of
  • that door!”
  • William spluttered. “If I put’n tother way—goo runnin’ down t’hill
  • like,” said William.
  • “Imbecile!” cried the Professor. “Put something under the wheels.
  • _Here!_” He careered about and produced great grey fragments of a
  • perished yew tree. “Now then,” he said. “Head up hill.”
  • William did his best.
  • “Oh! _not_ like that! Here, _you_!”
  • Bealby assisted with obsequious enthusiasm.
  • It was some time before the caravan was adjusted to the complete
  • satisfaction of the Professor. But at last it was done, and the end door
  • gaped at the whole prospect of the Weald with the steps hanging out
  • idiotically like a tongue. The hind wheels were stayed up very cleverly
  • by lumps of chalk and chunks of yew, living and dead, and certainly the
  • effect of it was altogether taller and better. And then the preparations
  • for the midday cooking began. The Professor was full of acute ideas
  • about camping and cooking, and gave Bealby a lively but instructive
  • time. There was no stream handy, but William was sent off to the hotel
  • to fetch a garden water-cart that the Professor with infinite foresight
  • had arranged should be ready.
  • The Geedges held aloof from these preparations,—they were unassuming
  • people; Miss Philips concentrated her attention upon the Weald—it seemed
  • to Bealby a little discontentedly—as if it was unworthy of her—and Mrs.
  • Bowles hovered smoking cigarettes over her husband’s activities, acting
  • great amusement.
  • “You see it pleases me to get Himself busy,” she said. “You’ll end a
  • Camper yet, Darlint, and us in the hotel.”
  • The Professor answered nothing, but seemed to plunge deeper into
  • practicality.
  • Under the urgency of Professor Bowles Bealby stumbled and broke a glass
  • jar of marmalade over some fried potatoes, but otherwise did well as a
  • cook’s assistant. Once things were a little interrupted by the Professor
  • going off to catch a cricket, but whether it was the right sort of
  • cricket or not he failed to get it. And then with three loud reports—for
  • a moment Bealby thought the mad butlers from Shonts were upon him with
  • firearms—Captain Douglas arrived and got off his motor bicycle and left
  • it by the roadside. His machine accounted for his delay, for those were
  • the early days of motor bicycles. It also accounted for a black smudge
  • under one of his bright little eyes. He was fair and flushed, dressed in
  • oilskins and a helmet-shaped cap and great gauntlets that made him, in
  • spite of the smudge, look strange and brave and handsome, like a
  • Crusader—only that he was clad in oilskin and not steel, and his
  • moustache was smaller than those Crusaders wore; and when he came across
  • the turf to the encampment Mrs. Bowles and Mrs. Geedge both set up a cry
  • of “A-_Ah_!” and Miss Philips turned an accusing face upon those two
  • ladies. Bealby knelt with a bunch of knives and forks in his hand,
  • laying the cloth for lunch, and when he saw Captain Douglas approaching
  • Miss Philips, he perceived clearly that that lady had already forgotten
  • her lowly adorer, and his little heart was smitten with desolation. This
  • man was arrayed like a chivalrous god, and how was a poor Bealby, whose
  • very collar, his one little circlet of manhood, had been reft from him,
  • how was he to compete with this tremendousness? In that hour the
  • ambition for mechanism, the passion for leather and oilskin, was sown in
  • Bealby’s heart.
  • “I told you not to come near me for a month,” said Madeleine, but her
  • face was radiant.
  • “These motor bicycles—very difficult to control,” said Captain Douglas,
  • and all the little golden-white hairs upon his sunlit cheek glittered in
  • the sun.
  • “And besides,” said Mrs. Bowles, “it’s all nonsense.”
  • The Professor was in a state of arrested administration; the three
  • others were frankly audience to a clearly understood scene.
  • “You ought to be in France.”
  • “I’m not in France.”
  • “I sent you into exile for a month,” and she held out a hand for the
  • captain to kiss.
  • He kissed it.
  • Someday, somewhere, it was written in the book of destiny Bealby should
  • also kiss hands. It was a lovely thing to do.
  • “Month! It’s been years,” said the captain. “Years and years.”
  • “Then you ought to have come back before,” she replied and the captain
  • had no answer ready....
  • § 5
  • When William arrived with the water-cart, he brought also further proofs
  • of the Professor’s organizing ability. He brought various bottles of
  • wine, red Burgundy and sparkling hock, two bottles of cider, and
  • peculiar and meritorious waters; he brought tinned things for _hors
  • d’œuvre_; he brought some luscious pears. When he had a moment with
  • Bealby behind the caravan he repeated thrice in tones of hopeless
  • sorrow, “They’ll eat um all. I _knows_ they’ll eat um all.” And then
  • plumbing a deeper deep of woe, “Ef they _don’t_ they’ll count um. Ode
  • Goggles’ll bag um.... E’s a _bagger_, ’e is.”
  • It was the brightest of luncheons that was eaten that day in the
  • sunshine and spaciousness above Winthorpe-Sutbury. Everyone was gay, and
  • even the love-torn Bealby, who might well have sunk into depression and
  • lethargy, was galvanized into an activity that was almost cheerful by
  • flashes from the Professor’s glasses. They talked of this and that;
  • Bealby hadn’t much time to attend, though the laughter that followed
  • various sallies from Judy Bowles was very tantalizing, and it had come
  • to the pears before his attention wasn’t so much caught as felled by the
  • word “Shonts.”... It was as if the sky had suddenly changed to
  • vermilion. _All these people were talking of Shonts!..._
  • “Went there,” said Captain Douglas, “in perfect good faith. Wanted to
  • fill up Lucy’s little party. One doesn’t go to Shonts nowadays for idle
  • pleasure. And then—I get ordered out of the house, absolutely Told to
  • Go.”
  • (This man had been at Shonts!)
  • “That was on Sunday morning?” said Mrs. Geedge.
  • “On Sunday morning,” said Mrs. Bowles suddenly, “we were almost within
  • sight of Shonts.”
  • (This man had been at Shonts even at the time when Bealby was there!)
  • “Early on Sunday morning. Told to go. I was fairly flabbergasted. What
  • the deuce is a man to do? Where’s he to go? Sunday? One doesn’t go to
  • places, Sunday morning. There I’d been sleeping like a lamb all night
  • and suddenly in came Laxton and said, ‘Look here, you know,’ he said,
  • ‘you’ve got to oblige me and pack your bag and go. Now.’ ‘Why?’ said I.
  • ‘Because you’ve driven the Lord Chancellor stark staring mad!’”
  • “But how?” asked the Professor, almost angrily, “how? I don’t see it.
  • Why should he ask you to go?”
  • “_I_ don’t know!” cried Captain Douglas.
  • “Yes, but—!” said the Professor, protesting against the unreasonableness
  • of mankind.
  • “I’d had a word or two with him in the train. Nothing to speak of. About
  • occupying two corner seats—always strikes me as a cad’s trick—but on my
  • honour I didn’t rub it in. And then he got it into his head we were
  • laughing at him at dinner—we were a bit, but only the sort of thing one
  • says about anyone—way he works his eyebrows and all that—and then he
  • thought I was ragging him.... I _don’t_ rag people. Got it so strongly
  • he made a row that night. Said I’d made a ghost slap him on his back.
  • Hang it!—what _can_ you say to a thing like that? In my room all the
  • time.”
  • “You suffer for the sins of your brother,” said Mrs. Bowles.
  • “Heavens!” cried the captain, “I never thought of that! Perhaps he
  • mistook me....”
  • He reflected for a moment and continued his narrative. “Then in the
  • night, you know, he heard noises.”
  • “They always do,” said the Professor nodding confirmation.
  • “Couldn’t sleep.”
  • “A sure sign,” said the Professor.
  • “And finally he sallied out in the early morning, caught the butler in
  • one of the secret passages—”
  • “How did the butler get into the secret passage?”
  • “Going round, I suppose. Part of his duties.... Anyhow he gave the poor
  • beggar an awful doing—awful—_brutal_—black eye,—all that sort of thing;
  • man much too respectful to hit back. Finally declared I’d been getting
  • up a kind of rag,—squaring the servants to help and so forth.... Laxton,
  • I fancy, half believed it.... Awkward thing, you know, having it said
  • about that you ragged the Lord Chancellor. Makes a man seem a sort of
  • mischievous idiot. Injures a man. Then going away, you see, seems a kind
  • of admission....”
  • “Why did you go?”
  • “Lucy,” said the captain compactly. “Hysterics.”
  • “Shonts would have burst,” he added, “if I hadn’t gone.”
  • Madeleine was helpful. “But you’ll have to do _something_ further,” she
  • said.
  • “What is one to _do_?” squealed the captain.
  • “The sooner you get the Lord Chancellor certified a lunatic,” said the
  • Professor soundly, “the better for your professional prospects.”
  • “He went on pretty bad after I’d gone.”
  • “You’ve heard”
  • “Two letters. I picked ’em up at Wheatley Post Office this morning. You
  • know he hadn’t done with that butler. Actually got out of his place and
  • scruffed the poor devil at lunch. Shook him like a rat, she says. Said
  • the man wasn’t giving him anything to drink—nice story, eh? Anyhow he
  • scruffed him until things got broken....
  • “I had it all from Minnie Timbre—you know, used to be Minnie Flax.” He
  • shot a propitiating glance at Madeleine. “Used to be neighbours of ours,
  • you know, in the old time. Half the people, she says, didn’t know what
  • was happening. Thought the butler was apoplectic and that old Moggeridge
  • was helping him stand up. Taking off his collar. It was Laxton thought
  • of saying it was a fit. Told everybody, she says. Had to tell ’em
  • Something, I suppose. But she saw better and she thinks a good many
  • others did. Laxton ran ’em both out of the room. Nice scene for Shonts,
  • eh? Thundering awkward for poor Lucy. Not the sort of thing the county
  • expected. Has her both ways. Can’t go to a house where the Lord
  • Chancellor goes mad. One alternative. Can’t go to a house where the
  • butler has fits. That’s the other. See the dilemma?...”
  • “I’ve got a letter from Lucy, too. It’s here”—he struggled—“See? Eight
  • sheets—pencil. No Joke for a man to read that. And she writes worse than
  • any decent self-respecting illiterate woman has a right to do. Quivers.
  • Like writing in a train. Can’t read half of it. But _she’s_ got
  • something about a boy on her mind. Mad about a boy. Have I taken away a
  • boy? They’ve lost a boy. Took him in my luggage, I suppose. She’d better
  • write to the Lord Chancellor. Likely as not he met him in some odd
  • corner and flew at him. Smashed him to atoms. Dispersed him. Anyhow
  • they’ve lost a boy.”
  • He protested to the world. “_I_ can’t go hunting lost boys for Lucy.
  • I’ve done enough coming away as I did....”
  • Mrs. Bowles held out an arresting cigarette.
  • “What sort of boy was lost?” she asked.
  • “_I_ don’t know. Some little beast of a boy. I daresay she’d only
  • imagined it. Whole thing been too much for her.”
  • “Read that over again,” said Mrs. Bowles, “about losing a boy. We’ve
  • found one.”
  • “That _little_ chap?”
  • “We found that boy”—she glanced over her shoulder, but Bealby was
  • nowhere to be seen—“on Sunday morning near Shonts. He strayed into us
  • like a lost kitten.”
  • “But I thought you said you knew his father, Judy,” objected the
  • Professor.
  • “Didn’t verify,” said Mrs. Bowles shortly, and then to Captain Douglas,
  • “read over again what Lady Laxton says about him....”
  • § 6
  • Captain Douglas struggled with the difficulties of his cousin’s
  • handwriting.
  • Everybody drew together over the fragments of the dessert with an eager
  • curiosity, and helped to weigh Lady Laxton’s rather dishevelled
  • phrases....
  • § 7
  • “We’ll call the principal witness,” said Mrs. Bowles at last, warming to
  • the business. “Dick!”
  • “Di-ick!”
  • “_Dick!_”
  • The Professor got up and strolled round behind the caravan. Then he
  • returned. “No boy there.”
  • “He _heard_!” said Mrs. Bowles in a large whisper and making round
  • wonder-eyes.
  • “She _says_,” said Douglas, “that the chances are he’s got into the
  • secret passages....”
  • The Professor strolled out to the road and looked up it and then down
  • upon the roofs of Winthorpe-Sutbury. “No,” he said. “He’s mizzled.”
  • “He’s only gone away for a bit,” said Mrs. Geedge. “He does sometimes
  • after lunch. He’ll come back to wash up.”
  • “He’s probably taking a snooze among the yew bushes before facing the
  • labours of washing up,” said Mrs. Bowles. “He _can’t_ have mizzled. You
  • see — in there — He can’t by any chance have taken his luggage!”
  • She got up and clambered—with a little difficulty because of its
  • piled-up position, into the caravan. “It’s all right,” she called out of
  • the door. “His little parsivel is still here.”
  • Her head disappeared again.
  • “I don’t think he’d go away like this,” said Madeleine. “After all, what
  • is there for him to go to—even if he is Lady Laxton’s missing boy....”
  • “I don’t believe he heard a word of it,” said Mrs. Geedge....
  • Mrs. Bowles reappeared, with a curious-looking brown paper parcel in her
  • hand. She descended carefully. She sat down by the fire and held the
  • parcel on her knees. She regarded it and her companions waggishly and
  • lit a fresh cigarette. “Our link with Dick,” she said, with the
  • cigarette in her mouth.
  • She felt the parcel, she poised the parcel, she looked at it more and
  • more waggishly. “I _wonder_,” she said.
  • Her expression became so waggish that her husband knew she was committed
  • to behaviour of the utmost ungentlemanliness. He had long ceased to
  • attempt restraint in these moods. She put her head on one side and tore
  • open the corner of the parcel just a little way.
  • “A tin can,” she said in a stage whisper.
  • She enlarged the opening. “Blades of grass,” she said.
  • The Professor tried to regard it humorously. “Even if you have ceased to
  • be decent you can still be frank.... I think, now, my dear, you might
  • just straightforwardly undo the parcel.”
  • She did. Twelve unsympathetic eyes surveyed the evidences of Bealby’s
  • utter poverty.
  • “He’s coming,” cried Madeleine suddenly.
  • Judy repacked hastily, but it was a false alarm.
  • “I said he’d mizzled,” said the Professor.
  • “And without washing up!” wailed Madeleine, “I couldn’t have thought it
  • of him....”
  • § 8
  • But Bealby had not “mizzled,” although he was conspicuously not in
  • evidence about the camp. There was neither sight nor sound of him for
  • all the time they sat about the vestiges of their meal. They talked of
  • him and of topics arising out of him, and whether the captain should
  • telegraph to Lady Laxton, “Boy practically found.” “I’d rather just find
  • him,” said the captain, “and anyhow until we get hold of him we don’t
  • know it’s her particular boy.” Then they talked of washing-up and how
  • detestable it was. And suddenly the two husbands, seeing their
  • advantage, renewed their proposals that the caravanners should put up at
  • the golflinks hotel, and have baths and the comforts of civilization for
  • a night or so—and anyhow walk thither for tea. And as William had now
  • returned—he was sitting on the turf afar off smoking a nasty-looking
  • short clay pipe—they rose up and departed. But Captain Douglas and Miss
  • Philips for some reason did not go off exactly with the others, but
  • strayed apart, straying away more and more into a kind of solitude....
  • First the four married people and then the two lovers disappeared over
  • the crest of the downs....
  • § 9
  • For a time, except for its distant sentinel, the caravan seemed
  • absolutely deserted, and then a clump of bramble against the wall of the
  • old chalk pit became agitated and a small rueful disillusioned
  • white-smeared little Bealby crept back into the visible universe again.
  • His heart was very heavy.
  • The time had come to go.
  • And he did not want to go. He had loved the caravan. He had adored
  • Madeleine.
  • He would go, but he would go beautifully—touchingly.
  • He would wash up before he went, he would make everything tidy, he would
  • leave behind him a sense of irreparable loss....
  • With a mournful precision he set about this undertaking. If Mergleson
  • could have seen, Mergleson would have been amazed....
  • He made everything look wonderfully tidy.
  • Then in the place where she had sat, lying on her rug, he found her
  • favourite book, a small volume of Swinburne’s poems very beautifully
  • bound. Captain Douglas had given it to her.
  • Bealby handled it with a kind of reverence. So luxurious it was, so
  • unlike the books in Bealby’s world, so altogether of her quality....
  • Strange forces prompted him. For a time he hesitated. Then decision came
  • with a rush. He selected a page, drew the stump of a pencil from his
  • pocket, wetted it very wet and, breathing hard, began to write that
  • traditional message, “Farewell. Remember Art Bealby.”
  • To this he made an original addition: “I washt up before I went.”
  • Then he remembered that so far as this caravan went he was not Art
  • Bealby at all. He renewed the wetness of his pencil and drew black lines
  • athwart the name of “Art Bealby” until it was quite unreadable; then
  • across this again and pressing still deeper so that the subsequent pages
  • re-echoed it he wrote these singular words “Ed rightful Earl Shonts.”
  • Then he was ashamed, and largely obliterated this by still more forcible
  • strokes. Finally above it all plainly and nakedly he wrote “Dick
  • Mal-travers....”
  • He put down the book with a sigh and stood up.
  • Everything was beautifully in order. But could he not do something yet?
  • There came to him the idea of wreathing the entire camping place with
  • boughs of yew. It would look lovely—and significant. He set to work. At
  • first he toiled zealously, but yew is tough to get and soon his hands
  • were painful. He cast about for some easier way, and saw beneath the
  • hind wheels of the caravan great green boughs—one particularly a
  • splendid long branch.... It seemed to him that it would be possible to
  • withdraw this branch from the great heap of sticks and stones that
  • stayed up the hind wheels of the caravan. It seemed to him that that was
  • so. He was mistaken, but that was his idea.
  • He set to work to do it. It was rather more difficult to manage than he
  • had supposed; there were unexpected ramifications, wider resistances.
  • Indeed, the thing seemed rooted.
  • Bealby was a resolute youngster at bottom.
  • He warmed to his task.... He tugged harder and harder....
  • § 10
  • How various is the quality of humanity!
  • About Bealby there was ever an imaginative touch; he was capable of
  • romance, of gallantries, of devotion. William was of a grosser clay,
  • slave of his appetites, a materialist. Such men as William drive one to
  • believe in born inferiors, in the existence of a lower sort, in the
  • natural inequality of men.
  • While Bealby was busy at his little gentle task of reparation, a task
  • foolish perhaps and not too ably conceived, but at any rate morally
  • gracious, William had no thought in the world but the satisfaction of
  • those appetites that the consensus of all mankind has definitely
  • relegated to the lower category. And which Heaven has relegated to the
  • lower regions of our frame. He came now slinking towards the vestiges of
  • the caravanners’ picnic, and no one skilled in the interpretation of the
  • human physiognomy could have failed to read the significance of the
  • tongue tip that drifted over his thin oblique lips. He came so softly
  • towards the encampment that Bealby did not note him. Partly William
  • thought of remnants of food, but chiefly he was intent to drain the
  • bottles. Bealby had stuck them all neatly in a row a little way up the
  • hill. There was a cider bottle with some heel-taps of cider, William
  • drank that; then there was nearly half a bottle of hock and William
  • drank that, then there were the drainings of the Burgundy and
  • Apollinaris. It was all drink to William.
  • And after he had drained each bottle William winked at the watching
  • angels and licked his lips, and patted the lower centres of his being
  • with a shameless base approval. Then fired by alcohol, robbed of his
  • last vestiges of self-control, his thoughts turned to the delicious
  • chocolates that were stored in a daintily beribboned box in the little
  • drawers beneath the sleeping bunk of Miss Philips. There was a new
  • brightness in his eye, a spot of pink in either cheek. With an
  • expression of the lowest cunning he reconnoitred Bealby.
  • Bealby was busy about something at the back end of the caravan, tugging
  • at something.
  • With swift stealthy movements of an entirely graceless sort, William got
  • up into the front of the caravan.
  • Just for a moment he hesitated before going in. He craned his neck to
  • look round the side at the unconscious Bealby, wrinkled the vast nose
  • into an unpleasant grimace and then—a crouching figure of appetite—he
  • crept inside.
  • Here they were! He laid his hand in the drawer, halted listening....
  • What was that?...
  • Suddenly the caravan swayed. He stumbled, and fear crept into his craven
  • soul. The caravan lurched. It was moving.... Its hind wheels came to the
  • ground with a crash....
  • He took a step doorward and was pitched sideways and thrown upon his
  • knees.... Then he was hurled against the dresser and hit by a falling
  • plate. A cup fell and smashed and the caravan seemed to leap and
  • bound....
  • Through the little window he had a glimpse of yew bushes hurrying
  • upward. The caravan was going down hill....
  • “Lummy!” said William, clutching at the bunks to hold himself
  • upright....
  • “Ca-arnt be that drink!” said William, aspread and aghast....
  • He attempted the door.
  • “Crikey! Here! Hold in! My shin!” ... “’Tis thut Brasted Vool of a Boy!”
  • “....” said William. “....——....
  • [Illustration: —— —— ——.” “——.”]
  • § 11
  • The caravan party soon came to its decision. They would stay the night
  • in the hotel. And so as soon as they had had some tea they decided to go
  • back and make William bring the caravan and all the ladies’ things round
  • to the hotel. With characteristic eagerness, Professor Bowles led the
  • way.
  • And so it was Professor Bowles who first saw the release of the caravan.
  • He barked. One short sharp bark. “Whup!” he cried, and very quickly,
  • “Whatstheboydoing?”
  • Then quite a different style of noise, with the mouth open “Wha—hoop!”
  • Then he set off running very fast down towards the caravan, waving his
  • arms and shouting as he ran, “Yaaps! You _Idiot_. Yaaps!”
  • The others were less promptly active.
  • Down the slope they saw Bealby, a little struggling active Bealby,
  • tugging away at a yew branch until the caravan swayed with his efforts,
  • and then—then there was a movement as though the thing tossed its head
  • and reared, and a smash as the heap of stuff that stayed up its hind
  • wheels collapsed....
  • It plunged like a horse with a dog at its heels, it lurched sideways,
  • and then with an air of quiet deliberation started down the grass slope
  • to the road and Winthorpe-Sutbury....
  • Professor Bowles sped in pursuit like the wind, and Mrs. Bowles after a
  • gasping moment set off after her lord, her face round and resolute. Mr.
  • Geedge followed at a more dignified pace, making the only really sound
  • suggestion that was offered on the occasion. “Hue! Stop it!” cried Mr.
  • Geedge, for all the world like his great prototype at the Balkan
  • Conference. And then like a large languid pair of scissors he began to
  • run. Mrs. Geedge after some indefinite moments decided to see the humour
  • of it all, and followed after her lord, in a fluttering rush, emitting
  • careful little musical giggles as she ran, giggles that she had learnt
  • long ago from a beloved schoolfellow. Captain Douglas and Miss Philips
  • were some way behind the others, and the situation had already developed
  • considerably before they grasped what was happening. Then obeying the
  • instincts of a soldier the captain came charging to support the others,
  • and Miss Madeleine Philips after some wasted gestures realized that
  • nobody was looking at her, and sat down quietly on the turf until this
  • paralyzing state of affairs should cease.
  • The caravan remained the centre of interest.
  • Without either indecent haste or any complete pause it pursued its way
  • down the road towards the tranquil village below. Except for the
  • rumbling of its wheels and an occasional concussion it made very little
  • sound: once or twice there was a faint sound of breaking crockery from
  • its interior and once the phantom of an angry yell, but that was all.
  • There was an effect of discovered personality about the thing. This
  • vehicle, which had hitherto been content to play a background part, a
  • yellow patch amidst the scenery, was now revealing an individuality. It
  • was purposeful and touched with a suggestion of playfulness, at once
  • kindly and human; it had its thoughtful instants, its phases of quick
  • decision, yet never once did it altogether lose a certain mellow
  • dignity. There was nothing servile about it; never for a moment, for
  • example, did it betray its blind obedience to gravitation. It was rather
  • as if it and gravitation were going hand in hand. It came out into the
  • road, butted into the bank, swept round, meditated for a full second,
  • and then shafts foremost headed downhill, going quietly faster and
  • faster and swaying from bank to bank. The shafts went before it like
  • arms held out....
  • It had a quality—as if it were a favourite elephant running to a beloved
  • master from whom it had been over-long separated. Or a slightly
  • intoxicated and altogether happy yellow guinea-pig making for some
  • coveted food....
  • At a considerable distance followed Professor Bowles, a miracle of
  • compact energy, running so fast that he seemed only to touch the ground
  • at very rare intervals....
  • And then, dispersedly, in their order and according to their natures,
  • the others....
  • There was fortunately very little on the road.
  • There was a perambulator containing twins, whose little girl guardian
  • was so fortunate as to be high up on the bank gathering blackberries.
  • A ditcher, ditching.
  • A hawker lost in thought.
  • His cart, drawn by a poor little black screw of a pony and loaded with
  • the cheap flawed crockery that is so popular among the poor.
  • A dog asleep in the middle of the village street.... Amidst this choice
  • of objects the caravan displayed a whimsical humanity. It reduced the
  • children in the perambulator to tears, but passed. It might have reduced
  • them to a sort of red-currant jelly. It lurched heavily towards the
  • ditcher and spared him, it chased the hawker up the bank, it whipped off
  • a wheel from the cart of crockery (which after an interval of
  • astonishment fell like a vast objurgation) and then it directed its
  • course with a grim intentness towards the dog.
  • It just missed the dog.
  • He woke up not a moment too soon. He fled with a yelp of dismay.
  • And then the caravan careered on a dozen yards further, lost energy
  • and—the only really undignified thing in its whole career—stood on its
  • head in a wide wet ditch. It did this with just the slightest lapse into
  • emphasis. _There!_ It was as if it gave a grunt—and perhaps there was
  • the faintest suggestion of William in that grunt—and then it became
  • quite still....
  • For a time the caravan seemed finished and done. Its steps hung from its
  • upper end like the tongue of a tired dog. Except for a few minute noises
  • as though it was scratching itself inside, it was as inanimate as death
  • itself.
  • But up the hill road the twins were weeping, the hawker and the ditcher
  • were saying raucous things, the hawker’s pony had backed into the ditch
  • and was taking ill-advised steps, for which it was afterwards to be
  • sorry, amidst his stock-in-trade, and Professor Bowles, Mrs. Bowles, Mr.
  • Geedge, Captain Douglas and Mrs. Geedge were running—running—one heard
  • the various patter of their feet.
  • And then came signs of life at the upward door of the caravan, a hand,
  • an arm, an active investigating leg seeking a hold, a large nose, a
  • small intent vicious eye; in fact—William.
  • William maddened.
  • Professor Bowles had reached the caravan. With a startling agility he
  • clambered up by the wheels and step and confronted the unfortunate
  • driver. It was an occasion for mutual sympathy rather than anger, but
  • the Professor was hasty, efficient and unsympathetic with the lower
  • classes, and William’s was an ill-regulated temperament.
  • “You consummate _ass_!” began Professor Bowles....
  • When William heard Professor Bowles say this, incontinently he smote him
  • in the face, and when Professor Bowles was smitten in the face he
  • grappled instantly and very bravely and resolutely with William.
  • For a moment they struggled fearfully, they seemed to be endowed
  • instantaneously with innumerable legs, and then suddenly they fell
  • through the door of the caravan into the interior, their limbs seemed to
  • whirl for a wonderful instant and then they were swallowed up....
  • The smash was tremendous. You would not have thought there was nearly so
  • much in the caravan still left to get broken....
  • A healing silence....
  • At length smothered noises of still inadequate adjustment within....
  • The village population in a state of scared delight appeared at a score
  • of points and converged upon the catastrophe. Sounds of renewed
  • dissension between William and the Professor inside the rearing yellow
  • bulk, promised further interests and added an element of mystery to this
  • manifest disaster.
  • § 12
  • As Bealby, still grasping his great branch of yew, watched these events,
  • a sense of human futility invaded his youthful mind. For the first time
  • he realized the gulf between intention and result. He had meant so
  • well....
  • He perceived it would be impossible to explain....
  • The thought of even attempting to explain things to Professor Bowles was
  • repellent to him....
  • He looked about him with round despairful eyes. He selected a direction
  • which seemed to promise the maximum of concealment with the minimum of
  • conversational possibility, and in that direction and without needless
  • delay he set off, eager to turn over an entirely fresh page in his
  • destiny as soon as possible....
  • To get away, the idea possessed all his being.
  • From the crest of the downs a sweet voice floated after his retreating
  • form and never overtook him.
  • “Di-ick!”
  • § 13
  • Then presently Miss Philips arose to her feet, gathered her skirts in
  • her hand and with her delicious chin raised and an expression of
  • countenance that was almost businesslike, descended towards the
  • gathering audience below. She wore wide-flowing skirts and came down the
  • hill in Artemesian strides.
  • It was high time that somebody looked at her.
  • CHAPTER V
  • THE SEEKING OF BEALBY
  • § 1
  • On the same Monday evening that witnessed Bealby’s first experience of
  • the theatre, Mr. Mergleson, the house steward of Shonts, walked slowly
  • and thoughtfully across the corner of the park between the laundry and
  • the gardens. His face was much recovered from the accidents of his
  • collision with the Lord Chancellor, resort to raw meat in the kitchen
  • had checked the development of his injuries, and only a few contusions
  • in the side of his face were more than faintly traceable. And suffering
  • had on the whole rather ennobled than depressed his bearing. He had a
  • black eye, but it was not, he felt, a common black eye. It came from
  • high quarters and through no fault of Mr. Mergleson’s own. He carried it
  • well. It was a fruit of duty rather than the outcome of wanton
  • pleasure-seeking or misdirected passion.
  • He found Mr. Darling in profound meditation over some peach trees
  • against the wall. They were not doing so well as they ought to do and
  • Mr. Darling was engaged in wondering why.
  • “Good evening, Mr. Darling,” said Mr. Mergleson.
  • Mr. Darling ceased rather slowly to wonder and turned to his friend.
  • “Good evening, Mr. Mergleson,” he said. “I don’t quite like the look of
  • these here peaches, _blowed_ if I do.”
  • Mr. Mergleson glanced at the peaches, and then came to the matter that
  • was nearest his heart.
  • “You ’aven’t I suppose seen anything of your stepson these last two
  • days, Mr. Darling?”
  • “Naturally _not_,” said Mr. Darling, putting his head on one side and
  • regarding his interlocutor. “Naturally not,—I’ve left that to you, Mr.
  • Mergleson.”
  • “Well, that’s what’s awkward,” said Mr. Mergleson, and then, with a
  • forced easiness, “You see, I ain’t seen ’im either.”
  • “No!”
  • “No. I lost sight of ’im—” Mr. Mergleson appeared to reflect—“late on
  • Sattiday night.”
  • “’Ow’s that, Mr. Mergleson?”
  • Mr. Mergleson considered the difficulties of lucid explanation. “We
  • missed ’im,” said Mr. Mergleson simply, regarding the well-weeded garden
  • path with a calculating expression and then lifting his eyes to Mr.
  • Darling’s with an air of great candour. “And we continue to miss him.”
  • “_Well!_” said Mr. Darling. “That’s rum.”
  • “Yes,” said Mr. Mergleson.
  • “It’s decidedly rum,” said Mr. Darling.
  • “We thought ’e might be ’iding from ’is work. Or cut off ’ome.”
  • “You didn’t send down to ask.”
  • “We was too busy with the week-end people. On the ’ole we thought if ’e
  • _’ad_ cut ’ome, on the ’ole, ’e wasn’t a very serious loss. ’E got in
  • the way at times.... And there was one or two things ’appened—... Now
  • that they’re all gone and ’e ’asn’t turned up—Well, I came down, Mr.
  • Darling, to arst you. Where’s ’e gone?”
  • “’E ain’t come ’ere,” said Mr. Darling surveying the garden.
  • “I ’arf expected ’e might and I ’arf expected ’e mightn’t,” said Mr.
  • Mergleson with the air of one who had anticipated Mr. Darling’s answer
  • but hesitated to admit as much.
  • The two gentlemen paused for some seconds and regarded each other
  • searchingly.
  • “Where’s ’e _got_ to?” said Mr. Darling.
  • “Well,” said Mr. Mergleson, putting his hands where the tails of his
  • short jacket would have been if it hadn’t been short, and looking
  • extraordinarily like a parrot in its more thoughtful moods, “to tell you
  • the truth, Mr. Darling, I’ve ’ad a dream about ’im—and it worries me. I
  • got a sort of ideer of ’im as being in one of them secret passages.
  • ’Iding away. There was a guest, well, I say it with all respec’ but
  • _anyone_ might ’ave ’id from ’im.... S’morning soon as the week-end ’ad
  • cleared up and gone ’ome, me and Thomas went through them passages as
  • well as we could. Not a trace of ’im. But I still got that ideer. ’E was
  • a wriggling, climbing,—enterprising sort of boy.”
  • “I’ve checked ’im for it once or twice,” said Mr. Darling with the red
  • light of fierce memories gleaming for a moment in his eyes.
  • “’E might even,” said Mr. Mergleson, “well, very likely ’ave got ’imself
  • jammed in one of them secret passages....”
  • “Jammed,” repeated Mr. Darling.
  • “Well—got ’imself somewhere where ’e can’t get out. I’ve ’eard tell
  • there’s walled-up dungeons.”
  • “They say,” said Mr. Darling, “there’s underground passages to the Abbey
  • ruins—three good mile away.”
  • “Orkward,” said Mr. Mergleson....
  • “Drat ’is eyes!” said Mr. Darling, scratching his head. “What does ’e
  • mean by it?”
  • “We can’t leave ’im there,” said Mr. Mergleson.
  • “I knowed a young devil once what crawled up a culvert,” said Mr.
  • Darling. “’Is father ’ad to dig ’im out like a fox.... Lord! ’ow ’e
  • walloped ’im for it.”
  • “Mistake to ’ave a boy in so young,” said Mr. Mergleson.
  • “It’s all very awkward,” said Mr. Darling, surveying every aspect of the
  • case. “You see—. ’Is mother sets a most estrordinary value on ’im. Most
  • estrordinary.”
  • “I don’t know whether she oughtn’t to be told,” said Mr. Mergleson. “I
  • was thinking of that.”
  • Mr. Darling was not the sort of man to meet trouble half-way. He shook
  • his head at that. “Not yet, Mr. Mergleson. I don’t think yet. Not until
  • everything’s been tried. I don’t think there’s any need to give her
  • needless distress,—none whatever. If you don’t mind I think I’ll come up
  • to-night—nineish say—and ’ave a talk to you and Thomas about it—a quiet
  • talk. Best to begin with a _quiet_ talk. It’s a dashed rum go, and me
  • and you we got to think it out a bit.”
  • “That’s what _I_ think,” said Mr. Mergleson with unconcealed relief at
  • Mr. Darling’s friendliness. “That’s exactly the light, Mr. Darling, in
  • which it appears to me. Because, you see—if ’e’s all right and in the
  • ’ouse, why doesn’t ’e come for ’is vittels?”
  • § 2
  • In the pantry that evening the question of telling someone was discussed
  • further. It was discussed over a number of glasses of Mr. Mergleson’s
  • beer. For, following a sound tradition, Mr. Mergleson brewed at Shonts,
  • and sometimes he brewed well and sometimes he brewed ill, and sometimes
  • he brewed weak and sometimes he brewed strong, and there was no monotony
  • in the cups at Shonts. This was sturdy stuff and suited Mr. Darling’s
  • mood, and ever and again with an author’s natural weakness and an
  • affectation of abstraction Mr. Mergleson took the jug out empty and
  • brought it back foaming.
  • Henry, the second footman, was disposed to a forced hopefulness so as
  • not to spoil the evening, but Thomas was sympathetic and distressed. The
  • red-haired youth made cigarettes with a little machine, licked them and
  • offered them to the others, saying little, as became him. Etiquette
  • deprived him of an uninvited beer, and Mr. Mergleson’s inattention
  • completed what etiquette began.
  • “I can’t bear to think of the poor little beggar, stuck head foremost
  • into some cobwebby cranny, blowed if I can,” said Thomas, getting help
  • from the jug.
  • “He was an interesting kid,” said Thomas in a tone that was frankly
  • obituary. “He didn’t like his work, one could see that, but he was
  • lively—and I tried to help him along all I could, when I wasn’t too busy
  • myself.”
  • “There was something sensitive about him,” said Thomas.
  • Mr. Mergleson sat with his arms loosely thrown out over the table.
  • “What we got to do is to tell someone,” he said, “I don’t see ’ow I can
  • put off telling ’er ladyship—after to-morrow morning. And then—’eaven
  • ’elp us!”
  • “’Course _I_ got to tell _my_ missis,” said Mr. Darling, and poured in a
  • preoccupied way, some running over.
  • “We’ll go through them passages again now before we go to bed,” said Mr.
  • Mergleson, “far as we can. But there’s ’oles and chinks on’y a boy could
  • get through.”
  • “_I_ got to tell the missis,” said Mr. Darling. “That’s what’s worrying
  • me....”
  • As the evening wore on there was a tendency on the part of Mr. Darling
  • to make this the refrain of his discourse. He sought advice. “’Ow’d you
  • tell the missis?” he asked Mr. Mergleson, and emptied a glass to control
  • his impatience before Mr. Mergleson replied.
  • “I shall tell ’er ladyship, just simply, the fact. I shall say, your
  • ladyship, here’s my boy gone and we don’t know where. And as she arsts
  • me questions so shall I give particulars.”
  • Mr. Darling reflected and then shook his head slowly.
  • “’Ow’d _ju_ tell the missis?” he asked Thomas.
  • “Glad I haven’t got to,” said Thomas. “_Poor_ little beggar.”
  • “Yes, but ’ow _would_ you tell ’er?” Mr. Darling said, varying the
  • accent very carefully.
  • “I’d go to ’er and I’d pat her back and I’d say, ‘bear up,’ see, and
  • when she asked what for, I’d just tell her what for—gradual like.”
  • “You don’t know the missis,” said Mr. Darling. “Henry, ’ow’d _ju_ tell
  • ’er?”
  • “Let ’er find out,” said Henry. “Wimmin do.”
  • Mr. Darling reflected, and decided that too was unworkable.
  • “’Ow’d _you_?” he asked with an air of desperation of the red-haired
  • youth.
  • The red-haired youth remained for a moment with his tongue extended,
  • licking the gum of a cigarette paper, and his eyes on Mr. Darling. Then
  • he finished the cigarette slowly, giving his mind very carefully to the
  • question he had been honoured with. “I think,” he said, in a low serious
  • voice, “I should say, just simply, Mary—or Susan—or whatever her name
  • is.”
  • “Tilda,” supplied Mr. Darling.
  • “‘Tilda,’ I should say. ‘The Lord gave and the Lord ’ath taken away.
  • Tilda!—’e’s gone.’ Somethin’ like that.”
  • The red-haired boy cleared his throat. He was rather touched by his own
  • simple eloquence.
  • Mr. Darling reflected on this with profound satisfaction for some
  • moments. Then he broke out almost querulously, “Yes, but brast
  • him!—_where’s_ ’e gone?”
  • “Anyhow,” said Mr. Darling, “I ain’t going to tell ’er, not till the
  • morning. I ain’t going to lose my night’s rest if I _have_ lost my
  • stepson. Nohow. Mr. Mergleson, I _must_ say, I don’t think I ever _’ave_
  • tasted better beer. Never. It’s—it’s famous beer.”
  • He had some more....
  • On his way back through the moonlight to the gardens Mr. Darling was
  • still unsettled as to the exact way of breaking things to his wife. He
  • had come out from the house a little ruffled because of Mr. Mergleson’s
  • opposition to a rather good idea of his that he should go about the
  • house and “holler for ’im a bit. He’d know my voice, you see. Ladyship
  • wouldn’t mind. Very likely ’sleep by now.” But the moonlight dispelled
  • his irritation.
  • How was he to tell his wife? He tried various methods to the listening
  • moon.
  • There was for example the off-hand newsy way. “You know tha’ boy yours?”
  • Then a pause for the reply. Then, “’E’s toley dis’peared.”
  • Only there are difficulties about the word totally.
  • Or the distressed impersonal manner. “Dre’fle thing happen’d. Dre’fle
  • thing. Tha’ poo’ lill’ chap, Artie—toley dis’peared.”
  • Totally again.
  • Or the personal intimate note. “Dunno wha’ you’ll say t’me, Tilda, when
  • you hear what-togottasay. Thur’ly bad news. Seems they los’ our Artie up
  • there—clean los’ ’im. Can’t fine ’im nowhere tall.”
  • Or the authoritative kindly. “Tilda—you go’ control yourself. Go’ show
  • whad you made of. Our boy—’e’s—hic—_los’_.”
  • Then he addressed the park at large with a sudden despair. “Don’ care
  • wha’ I say, she’ll blame it on to me. I _know_ ’er!”
  • After that the enormous pathos of the situation got hold of him. “Poor
  • lill’ chap,” he said. “Poor lill’ fell’,” and shed a few natural tears.
  • “Loved ’im jessis mione son.”
  • As the circumambient night made no reply he repeated the remark in a
  • louder, almost domineering tone....
  • He spent some time trying to climb the garden wall because the door did
  • not seem to be in the usual place. (Have to enquire about that in the
  • morning. Difficult to see everything is all right when one is so
  • bereaved). But finally he came on the door round a corner.
  • He told his wife merely that he intended to have a peaceful night, and
  • took off his boots in a defiant and intermittent manner.
  • The morning would be soon enough.
  • She looked at him pretty hard, and he looked at her ever and again, but
  • she never made a guess at it.
  • Bed.
  • § 3
  • So soon as the week-enders had dispersed and Sir Peter had gone off to
  • London to attend to various matters affecting the peptonizing of milk
  • and the distribution of baby soothers about the habitable globe, Lady
  • Laxton went back to bed and remained in bed until midday on Tuesday.
  • Nothing short of complete rest and the utmost kindness from her maid
  • would, she felt, save her from a nervous breakdown of the most serious
  • description. The festival had been stormy to the end. Sir Peter’s
  • ill-advised attempts to deprive Lord Moggeridge of alcohol had led to a
  • painful struggle at lunch, and this had been followed by a still more
  • unpleasant scene between host and guest in the afternoon. “This is an
  • occasion for tact,” Sir Peter had said and had gone off to tackle the
  • Lord Chancellor, leaving his wife to the direst, best founded
  • apprehensions. For Sir Peter’s tact was a thing by itself, a mixture of
  • misconception, recrimination and familiarity that was rarely well
  • received....
  • She had had to explain to the Sunday dinner party that his lordship had
  • been called away suddenly. “Something connected with the Great Seal,”
  • Lady Laxton had whispered in a discreet mysterious whisper. One or two
  • simple hearers were left with the persuasion that the Great Seal had
  • been taken suddenly unwell—and probably in a slightly indelicate manner.
  • Thomas had to paint Mergleson’s eye with grease-paint left over from
  • some private theatricals. It had been a patched-up affair altogether,
  • and before she retired to bed that night Lady Laxton had given way to
  • her accumulated tensions and wept.
  • There was no reason whatever why to wind up the day Sir Peter should
  • have stayed in her room for an hour saying what he thought of Lord
  • Moggeridge. She felt she knew quite well enough what he thought of Lord
  • Moggeridge, and on these occasions he always used a number of words that
  • she did her best to believe, as a delicately brought up woman, were
  • unfamiliar to her ears....
  • So on Monday, as soon as the guests had gone, she went to bed again and
  • stayed there, trying as a good woman should to prevent herself thinking
  • of what the neighbours could be thinking—and saying—of the whole affair,
  • by studying a new and very circumstantial pamphlet by Bishop Fowle on
  • social evils, turning over the moving illustrations of some recent
  • antivivisection literature and re-reading the accounts in the morning
  • papers of a colliery disaster in the north of England.
  • To such women as Lady Laxton, brought up in an atmosphere of refinement
  • that is almost colourless, and living a life troubled only by small
  • social conflicts and the minor violence of Sir Peter, blameless to the
  • point of complete uneventfulness, and secure and comfortable to the
  • point of tedium, there is something amounting to fascination in the
  • wickedness and sufferings of more normally situated people, there is a
  • real attraction and solace in the thought of pain and stress, and as her
  • access to any other accounts of vice and suffering was restricted she
  • kept herself closely in touch with the more explicit literature of the
  • various movements for human moralization that distinguish our age, and
  • responded eagerly and generously to such painful catastrophes as enliven
  • it. The counterfoils of her cheque book witnessed to her gratitude for
  • these vicarious sensations. She figured herself to herself in her day
  • dreams as a calm and white and shining intervention checking and
  • reproving amusements of an undesirable nature, and earning the tearful
  • blessings of the mangled by-products of industrial enterprise.
  • There is a curious craving for entire reality in the feminine
  • composition, and there were times when in spite of these feasts of
  • particulars, she wished she could come just a little nearer to the heady
  • dreadfulnesses of life than simply writing a cheque against it. She
  • would have liked to have actually _seen_ the votaries of evil blench and
  • repent before her contributions, to have, herself, unstrapped and
  • revived and pitied some doomed and chloroformed victim of the so-called
  • “scientist,” to have herself participated in the stretcher and the
  • hospital and humanity made marvellous by enlistment under the red-cross
  • badge. But Sir Peter’s ideals of womanhood were higher than his
  • language, and he would not let her soil her refinement with any vision
  • of the pain and evil in the world. “Sort of woman they want up there is
  • a Trained Nurse,” he used to say when she broached the possibility of
  • _going_ to some famine or disaster. “_You_ don’t want to go prying, old
  • girl....”
  • She suffered, she felt, from repressed heroism. If ever she was to shine
  • in disaster that disaster, she felt, must come to her, she might not go
  • to meet it, and so you realize how deeply it stirred her, how it
  • brightened her and uplifted her to learn from Mr. Mergleson’s halting
  • statements that perhaps, that probably, that almost certainly, a painful
  • and tragical thing was happening even now within the walls of Shonts,
  • that there was urgent necessity for action—if anguish was to be
  • witnessed before it had ended, and life saved.
  • She clasped her hands; she surveyed her large servitor with agonized
  • green-grey eyes.
  • “Something must be done at once,” she said. “Everything possible must be
  • done. Poor little Mite!”
  • “Of course, my lady, ’e _may_ ’ave run away!”
  • “Oh no!” she cried, “he hasn’t run away. He hasn’t run away. How can you
  • be so _wicked_, Mergleson. Of course he hasn’t run away. He’s there now.
  • And it’s too dreadful.”
  • She became suddenly very firm and masterful. The morning’s colliery
  • tragedy inspired her imagination.
  • “We must get pick-axes,” she said. “We must organize search parties. Not
  • a moment is to be lost, Mergleson—not a moment.... Get the men in off
  • the roads. Get everyone you can....”
  • And not a moment was lost. The road men were actually at work in Shonts
  • before their proper dinner-hour was over.
  • They did quite a lot of things that afternoon. Every passage attainable
  • from the dining-room opening was explored, and where these passages gave
  • off chinks and crannies they were opened up with a vigour which Lady
  • Laxton had greatly stimulated by an encouraging presence and liberal
  • doses of whisky. Through their efforts a fine new opening was made into
  • the library from the wall near the window, a hole big enough for a man
  • to fall through, because one did, and a great piece of stonework was
  • thrown down from the Queen Elizabeth tower, exposing the upper portion
  • of the secret passage to the light of day. Lady Laxton herself and the
  • head housemaid went round the panelling with a hammer and a chisel, and
  • called out “Are you there?” and attempted an opening wherever it sounded
  • hollow. The sweep was sent for to go up the old chimneys outside the
  • present flues. Meanwhile Mr. Darling had been set with several of his
  • men to dig for, discover, pick up and lay open the underground passage
  • or disused drain, whichever it was, that was known to run from the
  • corner of the laundry towards the old ice-house, and that was supposed
  • to reach to the abbey ruins. After some bold exploratory excavations
  • this channel was located and a report sent at once to Lady Laxton.
  • It was this and the new and alarming scar on the Queen Elizabeth tower
  • that brought Mr. Beaulieu Plummer post-haste from the estate office up
  • to the house. Mr. Beaulieu Plummer was the Marquis of Cranberry’s estate
  • agent, a man of great natural tact, and charged among other duties with
  • the task of seeing that the Laxtons did not make away with Shonts during
  • the period of their tenancy. He was a sound compact little man, rarely
  • out of extreme riding breeches and gaiters, and he wore glasses, that
  • now glittered with astonishment as he approached Lady Laxton and her
  • band of spade workers.
  • At his approach Mr. Darling attempted to become invisible, but he was
  • unable to do so.
  • “Lady Laxton,” Mr. Beaulieu Plummer appealed, “may I ask—?”
  • “Oh Mr. Beaulieu Plummer, I’m so _glad_ you’ve come. A little
  • boy—suffocating! I can hardly _bear_ it.”
  • “Suffocating!” cried Mr. Beaulieu Plummer, “_where_?” and was in a
  • confused manner told.
  • He asked a number of questions that Lady Laxton found very tiresome. But
  • how did she _know_ the boy was in the secret passage? Of course she
  • knew; was it likely she would do all this if she didn’t know? But
  • mightn’t he have run away? How could he when he was in the secret
  • passages? But why not first scour the countryside? By which time he
  • would be smothered and starved and dead!...
  • They parted with a mutual loss of esteem, and Mr. Beaulieu Plummer,
  • looking very serious indeed, ran as fast as he could straight to the
  • village telegraph-office. Or to be more exact, he walked until he
  • thought himself out of sight of Lady Laxton and then he took to his
  • heels and ran. He sat for some time in the parlour post office spoiling
  • telegraph forms, and composing telegrams to Sir Peter Laxton and Lord
  • Cranberry.
  • He got these off at last, and then drawn by an irresistible fascination
  • went back to the park and watched from afar the signs of fresh
  • activities on the part of Lady Laxton.
  • He saw men coming from the direction of the stables with large rakes.
  • With these they dragged the ornamental waters.
  • Then a man with a pick-axe appeared against the skyline and crossed the
  • roof in the direction of the clock tower, bound upon some unknown but
  • probably highly destructive mission.
  • Then he saw Lady Laxton going off to the gardens. She was going to
  • console Mrs. Darling in her trouble. This she did through nearly an hour
  • and a half. And on the whole it seemed well to Mr. Beaulieu Plummer that
  • so she should be occupied....
  • It was striking five when a telegraph boy on a bicycle came up from the
  • village with a telegram from Sir Peter Laxton.
  • “Stop all proceedings absolutely,” it said, “until I get to you.”
  • Lady Laxton’s lips tightened at the message. She was back from much
  • weeping with Mrs. Darling and altogether finely strung. Here she felt
  • was one of those supreme occasions when a woman must assert herself. “A
  • matter of life or death,” she wired in reply, and to show herself how
  • completely she overrode such dictation as this she sent Mr. Mergleson
  • down to the village public-house with orders to engage anyone he could
  • find there for an evening’s work on an extraordinarily liberal overtime
  • scale.
  • After taking this step the spirit of Lady Laxton quailed. She went and
  • sat in her own room and quivered. She quivered but she clenched her
  • delicate fist.
  • She would go through with it, come what might, she would go on with the
  • excavation all night if necessary, but at the same time she began a
  • little to regret that she had not taken earlier steps to demonstrate the
  • improbability of Bealby having simply run away. She set to work to
  • repair this omission. She wrote off to the Superintendent of Police in
  • the neighbouring town, to the nearest police magistrate, and then on the
  • off chance to various of her week-end guests, including Captain Douglas.
  • If it was true that he had organized the annoyance of the Lord
  • Chancellor (and though she still rejected that view she did now begin to
  • regard it as a permissible hypothesis), then he might also know
  • something about the mystery of this boy’s disappearance.
  • Each letter she wrote she wrote with greater fatigue and haste than its
  • predecessor and more illegibly.
  • Sir Peter arrived long after dark. He cut across the corner of the park
  • to save time, and fell into one of the trenches that Mr. Darling had
  • opened. This added greatly to the _éclat_ with which he came into the
  • hall.
  • Lady Laxton withstood him for five minutes and then returned abruptly to
  • her bedroom and locked herself in, leaving the control of the operations
  • in his hands....
  • “If he’s not in the house,” said Sir Peter, “all this is thunderin’
  • foolery, and if he’s in the house he’s dead. If he’s dead he’ll smell in
  • a bit and then’ll be the time to look for him. Somethin’ to go upon
  • instead of all this blind hacking the place about. No wonder they’re
  • threatenin’ proceedings....”
  • § 4
  • Upon Captain Douglas Lady Laxton’s letter was destined to have a very
  • distracting effect. Because, as he came to think it over, as he came to
  • put her partly illegible allusions to secret passages and a missing boy
  • side by side with his memories of Lord Moggeridge’s accusations and the
  • general mystery of his expulsion from Shonts, it became more and more
  • evident to him that he had here something remarkably like a clue,
  • something that might serve to lift the black suspicion of irreverence
  • and levity from his military reputation. And he had already got to the
  • point of suggesting to Miss Philips that he ought to follow up and
  • secure Bealby forthwith, before ever they came over the hill crest to
  • witness the disaster to the caravan.
  • Captain Douglas, it must be understood, was a young man at war within
  • himself.
  • He had been very nicely brought up, firstly in a charming English home,
  • then in a preparatory school for selected young gentlemen, then in a
  • good set at Eton, then at Sandhurst, where the internal trouble had
  • begun to manifest itself. Afterwards the Bistershires.
  • There were three main strands in the composition of Captain Douglas. In
  • the first place, and what was peculiarly his own quality, was the
  • keenest interest in the _why_ of things and the _how_ of things and the
  • general mechanism of things. He was fond of clocks, curious about
  • engines, eager for science; he had a quick brain and nimble hands. He
  • read Jules Verne and liked to think about going to the stars and making
  • flying machines and submarines—in those days when everybody knew quite
  • certainly that such things were impossible. His brain teemed with larval
  • ideas that only needed air and light to become active full-fledged
  • ideas. There he excelled most of us. In the next place, but this second
  • strand was just a strand that most young men have, he had a natural keen
  • interest in the other half of humanity, he thought them lovely,
  • interesting, wonderful, and they filled him with warm curiosities and
  • set his imagination cutting the prettiest capers. And in the third
  • place, and there again he was ordinarily human, he wanted to be liked,
  • admired, approved, well thought of.... And so constituted he had passed
  • through the educational influence of that English home, that preparatory
  • school, the good set at Eton, the Sandhurst discipline, the Bistershire
  • mess....
  • Now the educational influence of the English home, the preparatory
  • school, the good set at Eton and Sandhurst in those days—though
  • Sandhurst has altered a little since—was all to develop that third chief
  • strand of his being to the complete suppression of the others, to make
  • him look well and unobtrusive, dress well and unobtrusively, behave well
  • and unobtrusively, carry himself well, play games reasonably well, do
  • nothing else well, and in the best possible form. And the two brothers
  • Douglas, who were really very much alike, did honestly do their best to
  • be such plain and simple gentlemen as our country demands, taking
  • pretentious established things seriously, and not being odd or
  • intelligent—in spite of those insurgent strands.
  • But the strands were in them. Below the surface the disturbing impulses
  • worked and at last forced their way out....
  • In one Captain Douglas, as Mrs. Rampound Pilby told the Lord Chancellor,
  • the suppressed ingenuity broke out in disconcerting mystifications and
  • practical jokes that led to a severance from Portsmouth, in the other
  • the pent-up passions came out before the other ingredients in an
  • uncontrollable devotion to the obvious and challenging femininity of
  • Miss Madeleine Philips.... His training had made him proof against
  • ordinary women, deaf as it were to their charms, but she—she had
  • penetrated. And impulsive forces that have been pent up—go with a bang
  • when they go....
  • The first strand in the composition of Captain Douglas has still to be
  • accounted for, the sinister strain of intelligence and inventiveness and
  • lively curiosity. On that he had kept a warier hold. So far that had not
  • been noted against him. He had his motor bicycle, it is true, at a time
  • when motor bicycles were on the verge of the caddish; to that extent a
  • watchful eye might have found him suspicious; that was all that showed.
  • I wish I could add it was all that there was, but other things—other
  • things were going on. Nobody knew about them. But they were going on
  • more and more.
  • He read books.
  • Not decent fiction, not official biographies about other fellows’
  • fathers and all the old anecdotes brought up to date and so on, but
  • books with ideas,—you know, philosophy, social philosophy, scientific
  • stuff, all that rot. _The sort of stuff they read in mechanics’
  • institutes._
  • He thought. He could have controlled it. But he did not attempt to
  • control it. He _tried_ to think. He knew perfectly well that it wasn’t
  • good form, but a vicious attraction drew him on.
  • He used to sit in his bedroom-study at Sandhurst, with the door locked,
  • and write down on a bit of paper what he really believed and why. He
  • would cut all sorts of things to do this. He would question—things no
  • properly trained English gentleman ever questions.
  • And—he experimented.
  • This you know was long before the French and American aviators. It was
  • long before the coming of that emphatic lead from abroad without which
  • no well-bred English mind permits itself to stir. In the darkest secrecy
  • he used to make little models of cane and paper and elastic in the hope
  • that somehow he would find out something about flying. Flying—that
  • dream! He used to go off by himself to lonely places and climb up as
  • high as he could and send these things fluttering earthward. He used to
  • moon over them and muse about them. If anyone came upon him suddenly
  • while he was doing these things, he would sit on his model, or pretend
  • it didn’t belong to him, or clap it into his pocket, whichever was most
  • convenient, and assume the vacuous expression of a well-bred gentleman
  • at leisure—and so far nobody had caught him. But it was a dangerous
  • practice.
  • And finally, and this now is the worst and last thing to tell of his
  • eccentricities, he was keenly interested in the science of his
  • profession and intensely ambitious.
  • He thought—though it wasn’t his business to think, the business of a
  • junior officer is to obey and look a credit to his regiment—that the
  • military science of the British army was not nearly so bright as it
  • ought to be, and that if big trouble came there might be considerable
  • scope for an inventive man who had done what he could to keep abreast
  • with foreign work, and a considerable weeding out of generals whose
  • promotion had been determined entirely by their seniority, amiability
  • and unruffled connubial felicity. He thought that the field artillery
  • would be found out—there was no good in making a fuss about it
  • beforehand—that no end of neglected dodges would have to be picked up
  • from the enemy, that the transport was feeble, and a health
  • service—other than surgery and ambulance—an unknown idea, but he saw no
  • remedy but experience. So he worked hard in secret; he worked almost as
  • hard as some confounded foreigner might have done; in the belief that
  • after the first horrid smash-up there might be a chance to do things.
  • Outwardly of course he was sedulously all right. But he could not quite
  • hide the stir in his mind. It broke out upon his surface in a chattering
  • activity of incompleted sentences which he tried to keep as decently
  • silly as he could. He had done his utmost hitherto to escape the
  • observation of the powers that were. His infatuation for Madeleine
  • Philips had at any rate distracted censorious attention from these
  • deeper infamies....
  • And now here was a crisis in his life. Through some idiotic entanglement
  • manifestly connected with this missing boy, he had got tarred by his
  • brother’s brush and was under grave suspicion for liveliness and
  • disrespect.
  • The thing might be his professional ruin. And he loved the suppressed
  • possibilities of his work beyond measure.
  • It was a thing to make him absent-minded even in the company of
  • Madeleine.
  • § 5
  • Not only were the first and second strands in the composition of Captain
  • Douglas in conflict with all his appearances and pretensions, but they
  • were also in conflict with one another.
  • He was full of that concealed resolve to do and serve and accomplish
  • great things in the world. That was surely purpose enough to hide behind
  • an easy-going unpretending gentlemanliness. But he was also tremendously
  • attracted by Madeleine Philips, more particularly when she was not
  • there.
  • A beautiful woman may be the inspiration of a great career. This,
  • however, he was beginning to find was not the case with himself. He had
  • believed it at first and written as much and said as much, and said it
  • very variously and gracefully. But becoming more and more distinctly
  • clear to his intelligence was the fact that the very reverse was the
  • case. Miss Madeleine Philips was making it very manifest to Captain
  • Douglas that she herself was a career; that a lover with any other
  • career in view need not—as the advertisements say—apply.
  • And the time she took up!
  • The distress of being with her!
  • And the distress of _not_ being with her!
  • She was such a proud and lovely and entrancing and distressing being to
  • remember, and such a vain and difficult thing to be with.
  • She knew clearly that she was made for love, for she had made herself
  • for love; and she went through life like its empress with all mankind
  • and numerous women at her feet. And she had an ideal of the lover who
  • should win her which was like a oleographic copy of a Laszlo portrait of
  • Douglas greatly magnified. He was to rise rapidly to great things, he
  • was to be a conqueror and administrator, while attending exclusively to
  • her. And incidentally she would gather desperate homage from all other
  • men of mark, and these attentions would be an added glory to her love
  • for him. At first Captain Douglas had been quite prepared to satisfy all
  • these requirements. He had met her at Shorncliffe, for her people were
  • quite good military people, and he had worshipped his way straight to
  • her feet. He had made the most delightfully simple and delicate love to
  • her. He had given up his secret vice of thinking for the writing of
  • quite surprisingly clever love-letters, and the little white paper
  • models had ceased for a time to flutter in lonely places.
  • And then the thought of his career returned to him, from a new aspect,
  • as something he might lay at her feet. And once it had returned to him
  • it remained with him.
  • “Some day,” he said, “and it may not be so very long, some of those
  • scientific chaps will invent flying. Then the army will have to take it
  • up, you know.”
  • “I should _love_,” she said, “to soar through the air.”
  • He talked one day of going on active service. How would it affect them
  • if he had to do so? It was a necessary part of a soldier’s lot.
  • “But I should come too!” she said. “I should come with you.”
  • “It might not be altogether convenient,” he said, for already he had
  • learnt that Madeleine Philips usually travelled with quite a large
  • number of trunks and considerable impressiveness.
  • “Of course,” she said, “it would be splendid! How could I let you go
  • alone. You would be the great general and I should be with you always.”
  • “Not always very comfortable,” he suggested.
  • “Silly boy!—I shouldn’t mind _that_! How little you know me! Any
  • hardship!”
  • “A woman—if she isn’t a nurse—”
  • “I should come dressed as a man. I would be your groom....”
  • He tried to think of her dressed as a man, but nothing on earth could
  • get his imagination any further than a vision of her dressed as a
  • Principal Boy. She was so delightfully and valiantly not virile; her
  • hair would have flowed, her body would have moved, a richly fluent
  • femininity—visible through any disguise.
  • § 6
  • That was in the opening stage of the controversy between their careers.
  • In those days they were both acutely in love with each other. Their
  • friends thought the spectacle quite beautiful; they went together so
  • well. Admirers, fluttered with the pride of participation, asked them
  • for week-ends together; those theatrical week-ends that begin on Sunday
  • morning and end on Monday afternoon. She confided widely.
  • And when at last there was something like a rupture it became the
  • concern of a large circle of friends.
  • The particulars of the breach were differently stated. It would seem
  • that looking ahead he had announced his intention of seeing the French
  • army manœuvres just when it seemed probable that she would be out of an
  • engagement.
  • “But I ought to see what they are doing,” he said. “They’re going to try
  • those new dirigibles.”
  • Then should she come?
  • He wanted to whisk about. It wouldn’t be any fun for her. They might get
  • landed at nightfall in any old hole. And besides people would talk—
  • Especially as it was in France. One could do unconventional things in
  • England one couldn’t in France. Atmosphere was different.
  • For a time after that halting explanation she maintained a silence. Then
  • she spoke in a voice of deep feeling. She perceived, she said, that he
  • wanted his freedom. She would be the last person to hold a reluctant
  • lover to her side. He might go—to _any_ manœuvres. He might go if he
  • wished round the world. He might go away from her for ever. She would
  • not detain him, cripple him, hamper a career she had once been assured
  • she inspired....
  • The unfortunate man, torn between his love and his profession, protested
  • that he hadn’t meant _that_.
  • Then what _had_ he meant?
  • He realized he had meant something remarkably like it and he found great
  • difficulty in expressing these fine distinctions....
  • She banished him from her presence for a month, said he might go to his
  • manœuvres—with her blessing. As for herself, that was her own affair.
  • Some day perhaps he might know more of the heart of a woman.... She
  • choked back tears—very beautifully, and military science suddenly became
  • a trivial matter. But she was firm. He wanted to go. He must go. For a
  • month anyhow.
  • He went sadly....
  • Into this opening breach rushed friends. It was the inestimable triumph
  • of Judy Bowles to get there first. To begin with, Madeleine confided in
  • her, and then, availing herself of the privilege of a distant
  • cousinship, she commanded Douglas to tea in her Knightsbridge flat and
  • had a good straight talk with him. She liked good straight talks with
  • honest young men about their love affairs; it was almost the only form
  • of flirtation that the Professor, who was a fierce, tough,
  • undiscriminating man upon the essentials of matrimony, permitted her.
  • And there was something peculiarly gratifying about Douglas’s
  • complexion. Under her guidance he was induced to declare that he could
  • not live without Madeleine, that her love was the heart of his life,
  • without it he was nothing and with it he could conquer the world....
  • Judy permitted herself great protestations on behalf of Madeleine, and
  • Douglas was worked up to the pitch of kissing her intervening hand. He
  • had little silvery hairs, she saw, all over his temples. And he was such
  • a simple perplexed dear. It was a rich deep beautiful afternoon for
  • Judy.
  • And then in a very obvious way Judy, who was already deeply in love with
  • the idea of a caravan tour and the “wind on the heath” and the “Gipsy
  • life” and the “open road” and all the rest of it, worked this charming
  • little love difficulty into her scheme, utilized her reluctant husband
  • to arrange for the coming of Douglas, confided in Mrs. Geedge....
  • And Douglas went off with his perplexities. He gave up all thought of
  • France, week-ended at Shonts instead, to his own grave injury, returned
  • to London unexpectedly by a Sunday train, packed for France and started.
  • He reached Rheims on Monday afternoon. And then the image of Madeleine,
  • which always became more beautiful and mysterious and commanding with
  • every mile he put between them, would not let him go on. He made
  • unconvincing excuses to the _Daily Excess_ military expert with whom he
  • was to have seen things. “There’s a woman in it, my boy, and you’re a
  • fool to go,” said the _Daily Excess_ man, “but of course you’ll go, and
  • I for one don’t blame you—” He hurried back to London and was at Judy’s
  • trysting-place even as Judy had anticipated.
  • And when he saw Madeleine standing in the sunlight, pleased and proud
  • and glorious, with a smile in her eyes and trembling on her lips, with a
  • strand or so of her beautiful hair and a streamer or so of delightful
  • blue fluttering in the wind about her gracious form, it seemed to him
  • for the moment that leaving the manœuvres and coming back to England was
  • quite a right and almost a magnificent thing to do.
  • § 7
  • This meeting was no exception to their other meetings.
  • The coming to her was a crescendo of poetical desire, the sight of her a
  • climax, and then—an accumulation of irritations. He had thought being
  • with her would be pure delight, and as they went over the down straying
  • after the Bowles and the Geedges towards the Redlake Hotel he already
  • found himself rather urgently asking her to marry him and being annoyed
  • by what he regarded as her evasiveness.
  • He walked along with the restrained movement of a decent Englishman; he
  • seemed as it were to gesticulate only through his clenched teeth, and
  • she floated beside him, in a wonderful blue dress that with a wonderful
  • foresight she had planned for breezy uplands on the basis of
  • Botticelli’s _Primavera_. He was urging her to marry him soon; he needed
  • her, he could not live in peace without her. It was not at all what he
  • had come to say; he could not recollect that he had come to say
  • anything, but now that he was with her it was the only thing he could
  • find to say to her.
  • “But, my dearest boy,” she said, “how are we to marry? What is to become
  • of _your_ career and _my_ career?”
  • “I’ve _left_ my career!” cried Captain Douglas with the first clear note
  • of irritation in his voice.
  • “Oh! don’t let us quarrel,” she cried. “Don’t let us talk of all those
  • _distant_ things. Let us be happy. Let us enjoy just this lovely day and
  • the sunshine and the freshness and the beauty.... Because you know we
  • are snatching these days. We have so few days together. Each—each must
  • be a gem.... Look, dear, how the breeze sweeps through these tall dry
  • stems that stick up everywhere—low broad ripples.”
  • She was a perfect work of art, abolishing time and obligations.
  • For a time they walked in silence. Then Captain Douglas said, “All very
  • well—beauty and all that—but a fellow likes to know where he is.”
  • She did not answer immediately, and then she said, “I believe you are
  • angry because you have come away from France.”
  • “Not a bit of it,” said the Captain stoutly. “I’d come away from
  • anywhere to be with you.”
  • “I wonder,” she said.
  • “Well,—haven’t I?”
  • “I wonder if you ever are with me.... Oh!—I know you _want_ me. I know
  • you desire me. But the real thing, the happiness,—love. What is anything
  • to love—anything at all?”
  • In this strain they continued until their footsteps led them through the
  • shelter of a group of beeches. And there the gallant captain sought
  • expression in deeds. He kissed her hands, he sought her lips. She
  • resisted softly.
  • “No,” she said, “only if you love me with all your heart.”
  • Then suddenly, wonderfully, conqueringly she yielded him her lips.
  • “Oh!” she sighed presently, “if only you understood.”
  • And leaving speech at that enigma she kissed again....
  • But you see now how difficult it was under these mystically loving
  • conditions to introduce the idea of a prompt examination and dispatch of
  • Bealby. Already these days were consecrated....
  • And then you see Bealby vanished—going seaward....
  • Even the crash of the caravan disaster did little to change the
  • atmosphere. In spite of a certain energetic quality in the Professor’s
  • direction of the situation—he was a little embittered because his thumb
  • was sprained and his knee bruised rather badly and he had a slight
  • abrasion over one ear and William had bitten his calf—the general
  • disposition was to treat the affair hilariously. Nobody seemed really
  • hurt except William,—the Professor was not so much hurt as annoyed,—and
  • William’s injuries though striking were all superficial, a sprained jaw
  • and grazes and bruises and little things like that; everybody was
  • heartened up to the idea of damages to be paid for; and neither the
  • internal injuries to the caravan nor the hawker’s estimate of his
  • stock-in-trade proved to be as great as one might reasonably have
  • expected. Before sunset the caravan was safely housed in the
  • Winthorpe-Sutbury public house, William had found a congenial corner in
  • the bar parlour, where his account of an inside view of the catastrophe
  • and his views upon Professor Bowles were much appreciated, the hawker
  • had made a bit extra by carting all the luggage to the Redlake Royal
  • Hotel and the caravanners and their menfolk had loitered harmoniously
  • back to this refuge. Madeleine had walked along the road beside Captain
  • Douglas and his motor bicycle, which he had picked up at the now
  • desolate encampment.
  • “It only remains,” she said, “for that thing to get broken.”
  • “But I may want it,” he said.
  • “No,” she said, “Heaven has poured us together and now He has smashed
  • the vessels. At least He has smashed one of the vessels. And look!—like
  • a great shield, there is the moon. It’s the Harvest Moon, isn’t it?”
  • “No,” said the Captain, with his poetry running away with him. “It’s the
  • Lovers’ Moon.”
  • “It’s like a benediction rising over our meeting.”
  • And it was certainly far too much like a benediction for the Captain to
  • talk about Bealby.
  • That night was a perfect night for lovers, a night flooded with a kindly
  • radiance, so that the warm mystery of the centre of life seemed to lurk
  • in every shadow and hearts throbbed instead of beating and eyes were
  • stars. After dinner every one found wraps and slipped out into the
  • moonlight; the Geedges vanished like moths; the Professor made no secret
  • that Judy was transfigured for him. Night works these miracles. The only
  • other visitors there, a brace of couples, resorted to the boats upon the
  • little lake.
  • Two enormous waiters removing the coffee cups from the small tables upon
  • the verandah heard Madeleine’s beautiful voice for a little while and
  • then it was stilled....
  • § 8
  • The morning found Captain Douglas in a state of reaction. He was anxious
  • to explain quite clearly to Madeleine just how necessary it was that he
  • should go in search of Bealby forthwith. He was beginning to realize now
  • just what a chance in the form of Bealby had slipped through his
  • fingers. He had dropped Bealby and now the thing to do was to pick up
  • Bealby again before he was altogether lost. Her professional life
  • unfortunately had given Miss Philips the habit of never rising before
  • midday, and the Captain had to pass the time as well as he could until
  • the opportunity for his explanation came.
  • A fellow couldn’t go off without an explanation....
  • He passed the time with Professor Bowles upon the golf links.
  • The Professor was a first-rate player and an unselfish one; he wanted
  • all other players to be as good as himself. He would spare no pains to
  • make them so. If he saw them committing any of the many errors into
  • which golfers fall, he would tell them of it and tell them why it was an
  • error and insist upon showing them just how to avoid it in future. He
  • would point out any want of judgment, and not confine himself, as so
  • many professional golf teachers do, merely to the stroke. After a time
  • he found it necessary to hint to the Captain that nowadays a military
  • man must accustom himself to self-control. The Captain kept Pishing and
  • Tushing, and presently, it was only too evident, swearing softly; his
  • play got jerky, his strokes were forcible without any real strength,
  • once he missed the globe altogether and several times he sliced badly.
  • The eyes under his light eyelashes were wicked little things.
  • He remembered that he had always detested golf.
  • And the Professor. He had always detested the Professor.
  • And his caddie; at least he would have always detested his caddie if he
  • had known him long enough. His caddie was one of those maddening boys
  • with no expression at all. It didn’t matter what he did or failed to do,
  • there was the silly idiot with his stuffed face, unmoved. Really, of
  • course overjoyed—but apparently unmoved....
  • “Why did I play it that way?” the Captain repeated. “Oh! because I like
  • to play it that way.”
  • “_Well_,” said the Professor. “It isn’t a recognized way anyhow....”
  • Then came a moment of evil pleasures.
  • He’d sliced. Old Bowles had sliced. For once in a while he’d muffed
  • something. Always teaching others and here he was slicing! Why,
  • sometimes the Captain didn’t slice!...
  • He’d get out of that neatly enough. Luck! He’d get the hole yet. What a
  • bore it all was!...
  • Why couldn’t Madeleine get up at a decent hour to see a fellow? Why must
  • she lie in bed when she wasn’t acting? If she had got up all this
  • wouldn’t have happened. The shame of it! Here he was, an able-bodied
  • capable man in the prime of life and the morning of a day playing this
  • blockhead’s game—!
  • Yes—blockhead’s game!
  • “You play the like,” said the Professor.
  • “_Rather_,” said the Captain and addressed himself to his stroke.
  • “That’s not your ball,” said the Professor.
  • “Similar position,” said the Captain.
  • “You know, you might _win_ this hole,” said the Professor.
  • “Who cares?” said the Captain under his breath and putted extravagantly.
  • “That saves me,” said the Professor, and went down from a distance of
  • twelve yards.
  • The Captain, full of an irrational resentment, did his best to halve the
  • hole and failed.
  • “You ought to put in a week at nothing but putting,” said the Professor.
  • “It would save you at least a stroke a hole. I’ve noticed that on almost
  • every green, if I haven’t beaten you before I pull up in the putting.”
  • The Captain pretended not to hear and said a lot of rococo things inside
  • himself.
  • It was Madeleine who had got him in for this game. A beautiful healthy
  • girl ought to get up in the mornings. Mornings and beautiful healthy
  • girls are all the same thing really. She ought to be _dewy_—positively
  • dewy.... There she must be lying, warm and beautiful in bed—like
  • Catherine the Great or somebody of that sort. No. It wasn’t right. All
  • very luxurious and so on but not _right_. She ought to have understood
  • that he was bound to fall a prey to the Professor if she didn’t get up.
  • Golf! Here he was, neglecting his career; hanging about on these
  • _beastly_ links, all the sound men away there in France—it didn’t do to
  • think of it!—and he was playing this retired tradesman’s consolation!
  • (Beastly the Professor’s legs looked from behind. The uglier a man’s
  • legs are the better he plays golf. It’s almost a law.)
  • That’s what it was, a retired tradesman’s consolation. A decent British
  • soldier has no more business to be playing golf than he has to be
  • dressing dolls. It’s a game at once worthless and exasperating. If a man
  • isn’t perfectly fit he cannot play golf, and when he is perfectly fit he
  • ought to be doing a man’s work in the world. If ever anything deserved
  • the name of vice, if ever anything was pure, unforgivable dissipation,
  • surely golf was that thing....
  • And meanwhile that boy was getting more and more start. Anyone with a
  • ha’porth of sense would have been up at five and after that brat—might
  • have had him bagged and safe and back to lunch. _Ass_ one was at times!
  • “You’re here, sir,” said the caddie.
  • The captain perceived he was in a nasty place, open green ahead but with
  • some tumbled country near at hand and to the left, a rusty old gravel
  • pit, furze at the sides, water at the bottom. Nasty attractive hole of a
  • place. Sort of thing one gets into. He must pull himself together for
  • this. After all, having undertaken to play a game one must play the
  • game. If he hit the infernal thing, that is to say the ball, if he hit
  • the ball so that if it didn’t go straight it would go to the right
  • rather—clear of the hedge it wouldn’t be so bad to the right. Difficult
  • to manage. Best thing was to think hard of the green ahead, a long way
  • ahead,—with just the slightest deflection to the right. Now then,—heels
  • well down, club up, a good swing, keep your eye on the ball, keep your
  • eye on the ball, keep your eye on the ball just where you mean to hit
  • it—far below there and a little to the right—and _don’t_ worry....
  • _Rap._
  • “In the pond I _think_, sir.”
  • “The water would have splashed if it had gone in the pond,” said the
  • Professor. “It must be over there in the wet sand. You hit it pretty
  • hard, I thought.”
  • Search. The caddie looked as though he didn’t care whether he found it
  • or not. _He_ ought to be interested. It was his profession, not just his
  • game. But nowadays everybody had this horrid disposition towards
  • slacking. A Tired generation we are. The world is too much with us. Too
  • much to think about, too much to do, Madeleines, army manœuvres, angry
  • lawyers, lost boys—let alone such exhausting foolery as this game....
  • “_Got_ it, sir!” said the caddie.
  • “Where?”
  • “Here, sir! Up in the bush, sir!”
  • It was resting in the branches of a bush two yards above the slippery
  • bank.
  • “I doubt if you can play it,” said the Professor, “but it will be
  • interesting to try.”
  • The Captain scrutinized the position. “I can play it,” he said.
  • “You’ll slip, I’m afraid,” said the Professor.
  • They were both right. Captain Douglas drove his feet into the steep
  • slope of rusty sand below the bush, held his iron a little short and
  • wiped the ball up and over and as he found afterwards out of the rough.
  • All eyes followed the ball except his. The Professor made sounds of
  • friendly encouragement. But the Captain was going—going. He was on all
  • fours, he scrabbled handfuls of prickly gorse, of wet sand. His feet,
  • his ankles, his calves slid into the pond. How much more? No. He’d
  • reached the bottom. He proceeded to get out again as well as he could.
  • Not so easy. The bottom of the pond sucked at him....
  • When at last he rejoined the other three his hands were sandy red, his
  • knees were sandy red, his feet were of clay, but his face was like the
  • face of a little child. Like the face of a little fair child after it
  • has been boiled red in its bath and then dusted over with white powder.
  • His ears were the colour of roses, Lancaster roses. And his eyes too had
  • something of the angry wonder of a little child distressed....
  • “I was afraid you’d slip into the pond,” said the Professor.
  • “I didn’t,” said the Captain.
  • “!”
  • “I just got in to see how deep it was and cool my feet—I hate warm
  • feet.”
  • He lost that hole but he felt a better golfer now, his anger he thought
  • was warming him up so that he would presently begin to make strokes by
  • instinct, and do remarkable things unawares. After all there is
  • something in the phrase “getting one’s blood up.” If only the Professor
  • wouldn’t dally so with his ball and let one’s blood get down again.
  • Tap!—the Professor’s ball went soaring. Now for it. The Captain
  • addressed himself to his task, altered his plans rather hastily, smote
  • and topped the ball.
  • The least one could expect was a sympathetic silence. But the Professor
  • thought fit to improve the occasion.
  • “You’ll never drive,” said the Professor; “you’ll never drive with that
  • _irritable_ jerk in the middle of the stroke. You might just as well
  • smack the ball without raising your club. If you think—”
  • The Captain lost his self-control altogether.
  • “Look here,” he said, “if _you_ think that _I_ care a single rap about
  • how I hit the ball, if you think that I really want to win and do well
  • at this beastly, silly, elderly, childish game—.”
  • He paused on the verge of ungentlemanly language.
  • “If a thing’s worth doing at all,” said the Professor after a pause for
  • reflection, “it’s worth doing well.”
  • “Then it isn’t worth doing at all. As this hole gives you the game—if
  • you don’t mind—”
  • The Captain’s hot moods were so rapid that already he was acutely
  • ashamed of himself.
  • “O _certainly_, if you wish it,” said the Professor.
  • With a gesture the Professor indicated the altered situation to the
  • respectful caddies and the two gentlemen turned their faces towards the
  • hotel.
  • For a time they walked side by side in silence, the caddies following
  • with hushed expressions.
  • “Splendid weather for the French manœuvres,” said the Captain presently
  • in an off-hand tone, “that is to say if they are getting this weather.”
  • “At present there are a series of high pressure systems over the whole
  • of Europe north of the Alps,” said the Professor. “It is as near set
  • fair as Europe can be.”
  • “Fine weather for tramps and wanderers,” said the Captain after a
  • further interval.
  • “There’s a drawback to everything,” said the Professor. “But it’s very
  • lovely weather.”
  • § 9
  • They got back to the hotel about half-past eleven and the Captain went
  • and had an unpleasant time with one of the tyres of his motor bicycle
  • which had got down in the night. In replacing the tyre he pinched the
  • top of one of his fingers rather badly. Then he got the ordnance map of
  • the district and sat at a green table in the open air in front of the
  • hotel windows and speculated on the probable flight of Bealby. He had
  • been last seen going south by east. That way lay the sea, and all boy
  • fugitives go naturally for the sea.
  • He tried to throw himself into the fugitive’s mind and work out just
  • exactly the course Bealby _must_ take to the sea.
  • For a time he found this quite an absorbing occupation.
  • Bealby probably had no money or very little money. Therefore he would
  • have to beg or steal. He wouldn’t go to the workhouse because he
  • wouldn’t know about the workhouse, respectable poor people never know
  • anything about the workhouse, and the chances were he would be both too
  • honest and too timid to steal. He’d beg. He’d beg at front doors because
  • of dogs and things, and he’d probably go along a high road. He’d be more
  • likely to beg from houses than from passers-by, because a door is at
  • first glance less formidable than a pedestrian and more accustomed to
  • being addressed. And he’d try isolated cottages rather than the village
  • street doors, an isolated wayside cottage is so much more confidential.
  • He’d ask for food—not money. All that seemed pretty sound.
  • Now this road on the map—into it he was bound to fall and along it he
  • would go begging. No other?... No.
  • In the fine weather he’d sleep out. And he’d go—ten, twelve,
  • fourteen—thirteen, thirteen miles a day.
  • So now, he ought to be about here. And to-night,—here.
  • To-morrow at the same pace,—here.
  • But suppose he got a lift!...
  • He’d only get a slow lift if he got one at all. It wouldn’t make much
  • difference in the calculation....
  • So if to-morrow one started and went on to these cross roads marked
  • _Inn_, just about twenty-six miles it must be by the scale, and beat
  • round it one ought to get something in the way of tidings of Mr. Bealby.
  • Was there any reason why Bealby shouldn’t go on south by east and
  • seaward?...
  • None.
  • And now there remained nothing to do but to explain all this clearly to
  • Madeleine. And why didn’t she come down? Why didn’t she come down?
  • But when one got Bealby what would one do with him?
  • Wring the truth out of him—half by threats and half by persuasion.
  • Suppose after all he hadn’t any connexion with the upsetting of Lord
  • Moggeridge? He had. Suppose he hadn’t. He had. He had. He had.
  • And when one had the truth?
  • Whisk the boy right up to London and confront the Lord Chancellor with
  • the facts. But suppose he wouldn’t be confronted with the facts. He was
  • a touchy old sinner....
  • For a time Captain Douglas balked at this difficulty. Then suddenly
  • there came into his head the tall figure, the long moustaches of that
  • kindly popular figure, his adopted uncle Lord Chickney. Suppose he took
  • the boy straight to Uncle Chickney, told him the whole story. Even the
  • Lord Chancellor would scarcely refuse ten minutes to General Lord
  • Chickney....
  • The clearer the plans of Captain Douglas grew the more anxious he became
  • to put them before Madeleine—clearly and convincingly....
  • Because first he had to catch his boy....
  • Presently, as Captain Douglas fretted at the continued eclipse of
  • Madeleine, his thumb went into his waistcoat pocket and found a piece of
  • paper. He drew it out and looked at it. It was a little piece of stiff
  • note-paper cut into the shape of a curved V rather after the fashion of
  • a soaring bird. It must have been there for months. He looked at it. His
  • care-wrinkled brow relaxed. He glanced over his shoulder at the house
  • and then held this little scrap high over his head and let go. It
  • descended with a slanting flight curving round to the left and then came
  • about and swept down to the ground to the right.... Now why did it go
  • like that? As if it changed its mind. He tried it again. Same result....
  • Suppose the curvature of the wings was a little greater? Would it make a
  • more acute or a less acute angle? He did not know.... Try it.
  • He felt in his pocket for a piece of paper, found Lady Laxton’s letter,
  • produced a stout pair of nail scissors in a sheath from a waistcoat
  • pocket, selected a good clear sheet, and set himself to cut out his
  • improved V....
  • As he did so his eyes were on V number one, on the ground. It would be
  • interesting to see if this thing turned about to the left again. If in
  • fact it would go on zig-zagging. It ought, he felt, to do so. But to
  • test that one ought to release it from some higher point so as to give
  • it a longer flight. Stand on the chair?...
  • Not in front of the whole rotten hotel. And there was a beastly looking
  • man in a green apron coming out of the house,—the sort of man who looks
  • at you. He might come up and watch; these fellows are equal to anything
  • of that sort. Captain Douglas replaced his scissors and scraps in his
  • pockets, leaned back with an affectation of boredom, got up, lit a
  • cigarette—sort of thing the man in the green apron would think all
  • right—and strolled off towards a clump of beech trees, beyond which were
  • bushes and a depression. There perhaps one might be free from
  • observation. Just try these things for a bit. That point about the angle
  • was a curious one; it made one feel one’s ignorance not to know that....
  • § 10
  • The ideal King has a careworn look, he rules, he has to do things, but
  • the ideal Queen is radiant happiness, tall and sweetly dignified, simply
  • she has to be things. And when at last towards midday Queen Madeleine
  • dispelled the clouds of the morning and came shining back into the world
  • that waited outside her door, she was full of thankfulness for herself
  • and for the empire that was given her. She knew she was a delicious and
  • wonderful thing, she knew she was well done, her hands, the soft folds
  • of her dress as she held it up, the sweep of her hair from her forehead
  • pleased her, she lifted her chin but not too high for the almost
  • unenvious homage in the eyes of the housemaid on the staircase. Her
  • descent was well timed for the lunch gathering of the hotel guests;
  • there was “_Ah!_—here she comes at last!” and there was her own
  • particular court out upon the verandah before the entrance, Geedge and
  • the Professor and Mrs. Bowles—and Mrs. Geedge coming across the
  • lawn,—and the lover?
  • She came on down and out into the sunshine. She betrayed no surprise.
  • The others met her with flattering greetings that she returned
  • smilingly. But the lover—?
  • He was not there!
  • It was as if the curtain had gone up on almost empty stalls.
  • He ought to have been worked up and waiting tremendously. He ought to
  • have spent the morning in writing a poem to her or in writing a
  • delightful poetical love letter she could carry away and read or in
  • wandering alone and thinking about her. He ought to be feeling now like
  • the end of a vigil. He ought to be standing now, a little in the
  • background and with that pleasant flush of his upon his face and that
  • shy, subdued, reluctant look that was so infinitely more flattering than
  • any boldness of admiration. And then she would go towards him, for she
  • was a giving type, and hold out both hands to him, and he, as though he
  • couldn’t help it, in spite of all his British reserve, would take one
  • and hesitate—which made it all the more marked—and kiss it....
  • Instead of which he was just not there....
  • No visible disappointment dashed her bravery. She knew that at the
  • slightest flicker Judy and Mrs. Geedge would guess and that anyhow the
  • men would guess nothing. “I’ve rested,” she said, “I’ve rested
  • delightfully. What have you all been doing?”
  • Judy told of great conversations, Mr. Geedge had been looking for
  • trout in the stream, Mrs. Geedge with a thin little smile said she
  • had been making a few notes and—she added the word with
  • deliberation—“observations,” and Professor Bowles said he had had a
  • round of golf with the Captain. “And he lost?” asked Madeleine.
  • “He’s careless in his drive and impatient at the greens,” said the
  • Professor modestly.
  • “And then?”
  • “He vanished,” said the Professor, recognizing the true orientation of
  • her interest.
  • There was a little pause and Mrs. Geedge said, “You know—” and stopped
  • short.
  • Interrogative looks focussed upon her.
  • “It’s so odd,” she said.
  • Curiosity increased.
  • “I suppose one ought not to say,” said Mrs. Geedge, “and yet—why
  • shouldn’t one?”
  • “Exactly,” said Professor Bowles, and every one drew a little nearer to
  • Mrs. Geedge.
  • “One can’t help being amused,” she said. “It was so—extraordinary.”
  • “Is it something about the Captain?” asked Madeleine.
  • “Yes. You see,—he didn’t see me.”
  • “Is he—is he writing poetry?” Madeleine was much entertained and
  • relieved at the thought. That would account for everything. The poor
  • dear! He hadn’t been able to find some rhyme!
  • But one gathered from the mysterious airs of Mrs. Geedge that he was not
  • writing poetry. “You see,” she said, “I was lying out there among the
  • bushes, just jotting down a few little things,—and he came by. And he
  • went down into the hollow out of sight.... And what do you think he is
  • doing? You’d never guess? He’s been at it for twenty minutes.”
  • They didn’t guess.
  • “He’s playing with little bits of paper—Oh! like a kitten plays with
  • dead leaves. He throws them up—and they flutter to the ground—and then
  • he pounces on them.”
  • “But—” said Madeleine. And then very brightly, “let’s go and see!”
  • She was amazed. She couldn’t understand. She hid it under a light
  • playfulness, that threatened to become distraught. Even when presently,
  • after a very careful stalking of the dell under the guidance of Mrs.
  • Geedge, with the others in support, she came in sight of him, she still
  • found him incredible. There was her lover, her devoted lover, standing
  • on the top bar of a fence, his legs wide apart and his body balanced
  • with difficulty, and in his fingers poised high was a little scrap of
  • paper. This was the man who should have been waiting in the hall with
  • feverish anxiety. His fingers released the little model and down it went
  • drifting....
  • He seemed to be thinking of nothing else in the world. She might never
  • have been born!...
  • Some noise, some rustle, caught his ear. He turned his head quickly,
  • guiltily, and saw her and her companions.
  • And then he crowned her astonishment. No lovelight leapt to his eyes; he
  • uttered no cry of joy. Instead he clutched wildly at the air, shouted,
  • “Oh _damn_!” and came down with a complicated inelegance on all fours
  • upon the ground.
  • He was angry with her—angry; she could see that he was extremely angry.
  • § 11
  • So it was that the incompatibilities of man and woman arose again in the
  • just recovering love dream of Madeleine Philips. But now the discord was
  • far more evident than it had been at the first breach.
  • Suddenly her dear lover, her flatterer, her worshipper, had become a
  • strange averted man. He scrabbled up two of his paper scraps before he
  • came towards her, still with no lovelight in his eyes. He kissed her
  • hand as if it was a matter of course and said almost immediately: “I’ve
  • been hoping for you all the endless morning. I’ve had to amuse myself as
  • best I can.” His tone was resentful. He spoke as if he had a claim upon
  • her—upon her attentions. As if it wasn’t entirely upon his side that
  • obligations lay.
  • She resolved that shouldn’t deter her from being charming.
  • And all through the lunch she was as charming as she could be, and under
  • such treatment that rebellious ruffled quality vanished from his manner,
  • vanished so completely that she could wonder if it had really been
  • evident at any time. The alert servitor returned.
  • She was only too pleased to forget the disappointment of her descent and
  • forgive him, and it was with a puzzled incredulity that she presently
  • saw his “difficult” expression returning. It was an odd little knitting
  • of the brows, a faint absentmindedness, a filming of the brightness of
  • his worship. He was just perceptibly indifferent to the charmed and
  • charming things she was saying.
  • It seemed best to her to open the question herself. “Is there something
  • on your mind, Dot?”
  • “Dot” was his old school nickname.
  • “Well, no—not exactly on my mind. But—. It’s a bother of course. There’s
  • that confounded boy....”
  • “Were you trying some sort of divination about him? With those pieces of
  • paper?”
  • “No. That was different. That was—just something else. But you see that
  • boy—. Probably clear up the whole of the Moggeridge bother—and you know
  • it _is_ a bother. Might turn out beastly awkward....”
  • It was extraordinarily difficult to express. He wanted so much to stay
  • with her and he wanted so much to go.
  • But all reason, all that was expressible, all that found vent in words
  • and definite suggestions, was on the side of an immediate pursuit of
  • Bealby. So that it seemed to her he wanted and intended to go much more
  • definitely than he actually did.
  • That divergence of purpose flawed a beautiful afternoon, cast chill
  • shadows of silence over their talk, arrested endearments. She was
  • irritated. About six o’clock she urged him to go; she did not mind,
  • anyhow she had things to see to, letters to write, and she left him with
  • an effect of leaving him for ever. He went and overhauled his motor
  • bicycle thoroughly and then an aching dread of separation from her
  • arrested him.
  • Dinner, the late June sunset and the moon seemed to bring them together
  • again. Almost harmoniously he was able to suggest that he should get up
  • very early the next morning, pursue and capture Bealby and return for
  • lunch.
  • “You’d get up at dawn!” she cried. “But how perfectly Splendid the
  • midsummer dawn must be.”
  • Then she had an inspiration. “Dot!” she cried, “I will get up at dawn
  • also and come with you.... Yes, but as you say he cannot be more than
  • thirteen miles away we’d catch him warm in his little bed somewhere. And
  • the freshness! The dewy freshness!”
  • And she laughed her beautiful laugh and said it would be “Such _Fun_!”
  • entering as she supposed into his secret desires and making the most
  • perfect of reconciliations. They were to have tea first, which she would
  • prepare with the caravan lamp and kettle. Mrs. Geedge would hand it over
  • to her.
  • She broke into song. “A Hunting we will go-ooh,” she sang. “A Hunting we
  • will go....”
  • But she could not conquer the churlish underside of the Captain’s nature
  • even by such efforts. She threw a glamour of vigour and fun over the
  • adventure, but some cold streak in his composition was insisting all the
  • time that as a boy hunt the attempt failed. Various little delays in her
  • preparations prevented a start before half-past seven, he let that weigh
  • with him, and when sometimes she clapped her hands and ran—and she ran
  • like a deer, and sometimes she sang, he said something about going at an
  • even pace.
  • At a quarter past one Mrs. Geedge observed them returning. They were
  • walking abreast and about six feet apart, they bore themselves grimly,
  • after the manner of those who have delivered ultimata, and they
  • conversed no more....
  • In the afternoon Madeleine kept her own room, exhausted, and Captain
  • Douglas sought opportunities of speaking to her in vain. His face
  • expressed distress and perplexity, with momentary lapses into wrathful
  • resolution, and he evaded Judy and her leading questions and talked
  • about the weather with Geedge. He declined a proposal of the Professor’s
  • to go round the links, with especial reference to his neglected putting.
  • “You ought to, you know,” said the Professor.
  • About half-past three, and without any publication of his intention,
  • Captain Douglas departed upon his motor bicycle....
  • Madeleine did not reappear until dinner-time, and then she was clad in
  • lace and gaiety that impressed the naturally very good observation of
  • Mrs. Geedge as unreal.
  • § 12
  • The Captain, a confusion of motives that was as it were a mind returning
  • to chaos, started. He had seen tears in her eyes. Just for one instant,
  • but certainly they were tears. Tears of vexation. Or sorrow? (Which is
  • the worse thing for a lover to arouse, grief or resentment?) But this
  • boy must be caught, because if he was not caught a perpetually
  • developing story of imbecile practical joking upon eminent and
  • influential persons would eat like a cancer into the Captain’s career.
  • And if his career was spoilt what sort of thing would he be as a lover?
  • Not to mention that he might never get a chance then to try flying for
  • military purposes.... So anyhow, anyhow, this boy must be caught. But
  • quickly, for women’s hearts are tender, they will not stand exposure to
  • hardship. There is a kind of unreasonableness natural to goddesses.
  • Unhappily this was an expedition needing wariness, deliberation, and one
  • brought to it a feverish hurry to get back. There must be self-control.
  • There must be patience. Such occasions try the soldierly quality of a
  • man....
  • It added nothing to the Captain’s self-control that after he had
  • travelled ten miles he found he had forgotten his quite indispensable
  • map and had to return for it. Then he was seized again with doubts
  • about his inductions and went over them again, sitting by the
  • roadside. (There must be patience.) ... He went on at a pace of
  • thirty-five miles an hour to the inn he had marked upon his map as
  • Bealby’s limit for the second evening. It was a beastly little inn, it
  • stewed tea for the Captain atrociously and it knew nothing of Bealby.
  • In the adjacent cottages also they had never heard of Bealby. Captain
  • Douglas revised his deductions for the third time and came to the
  • conclusion that he had not made a proper allowance for Wednesday
  • afternoon. Then there was all Thursday, and the longer, lengthening
  • part of Friday. He might have done thirty miles or more already. And
  • he might have crossed this corner—inconspicuously.
  • Suppose he hadn’t after all come along this road!
  • He had a momentary vision of Madeleine with eyes brightly tearful. “You
  • left me for a Wild Goose Chase,” he fancied her saying....
  • One must stick to one’s job. A soldier more particularly must stick to
  • his job. Consider Balaclava....
  • He decided to go on along this road and try the incidental cottages that
  • his reasoning led him to suppose were the most likely places at which
  • Bealby would ask for food. It was a business demanding patience and
  • politeness.
  • So a number of cottagers, for the greater part they were elderly women
  • past the fiercer rush and hurry of life, grandmothers and ancient dames
  • or wives at leisure with their children away at the Council schools, had
  • a caller that afternoon. Cottages are such lonely places in the daytime
  • that even district visitors and canvassers are godsends and only tramps
  • ill received. Captain Douglas ranked high in the scale of visitors.
  • There was something about him, his fairness, a certain handsomeness, his
  • quick colour, his active speech, which interested women at all times,
  • and now an indefinable flow of romantic excitement conveyed itself to
  • his interlocutors. He encountered the utmost civility everywhere; doors
  • at first tentatively ajar opened wider at the sight of him and there was
  • a kindly disposition to enter into his troubles lengthily and
  • deliberately. People listened attentively to his demands, and before
  • they testified to Bealby’s sustained absence from their perception they
  • would for the most part ask numerous questions in return. They wanted to
  • hear the Captain’s story, the reason for his research, the relationship
  • between himself and the boy, they wanted to feel something of the
  • sentiment of the thing. After that was the season for negative facts.
  • Perhaps when everything was stated they might be able to conjure up what
  • he wanted. He was asked in to have tea twice, for he looked not only
  • pink and dusty, but dry, and one old lady said that years ago she had
  • lost just such a boy as Bealby seemed to be—“Ah! not in the way _you_
  • have lost him”—and she wept, poor old dear! and was only comforted after
  • she had told the Captain three touching but extremely lengthy and
  • detailed anecdotes of Bealby’s vanished prototype.
  • (Fellow cannot rush away, you know; still all this sort of thing,
  • accumulating, means a confounded lot of delay.)
  • And then there was a deaf old man.... A very, very tiresome deaf old man
  • who said at first he _had_ seen Bealby....
  • After all the old fellow was deaf....
  • The sunset found the Captain on a breezy common forty miles away from
  • the Redlake Royal Hotel and by this time he knew that fugitive boys
  • cannot be trusted to follow the lines even of the soundest inductions.
  • This business meant a search.
  • Should he pelt back to Redlake and start again more thoroughly on the
  • morrow?
  • A moment of temptation.
  • If he did he knew she wouldn’t let him go.
  • _No!_
  • NO!
  • He must make a sweeping movement through the country to the left, trying
  • up and down the roads that, roughly speaking, radiated from Redlake
  • between the twenty-fifth and the thirty-fifth milestone....
  • It was night and high moonlight when at last the Captain reached
  • Crayminster, that little old town decayed to a village, in the Crays
  • valley. He was hungry, dispirited, quite unsuccessful, and here he
  • resolved to eat and rest for the night.
  • He would have a meal, for by this time he was ravenous, and then go and
  • talk in the bar or the tap about Bealby.
  • Until he had eaten he felt he could not endure the sound of his own
  • voice repeating what had already become a tiresome stereotyped formula;
  • “You haven’t I suppose seen or heard anything during the last two days
  • of a small boy—little chap of about thirteen—wandering about? He’s a
  • sturdy resolute little fellow with a high colour, short wiry hair,
  • rather dark....”
  • The White Hart at Crayminster, after some negotiations, produced mutton
  • cutlets and Australian hock. As he sat at his meal in the small
  • ambiguous respectable dining-room of the inn—adorned with framed and
  • glazed beer advertisements, crinkled paper fringes and insincere
  • sporting prints—he became aware of a murmurous confabulation going on in
  • the bar parlour. It must certainly he felt be the bar parlour....
  • He could not hear distinctly, and yet it seemed to him that the
  • conversational style of Crayminster was abnormally rich in expletive.
  • And the tone was odd. It had a steadfast quality of commination.
  • He brushed off a crumb from his jacket, lit a cigarette and stepped
  • across the passage to put his hopeless questions.
  • The talk ceased abruptly at his appearance.
  • It was one of those deep-toned bar parlours that are so infinitely more
  • pleasant to the eye than the tawdry decorations of the genteel
  • accommodation. It was brown with a trimming of green paper hops and it
  • had a mirror and glass shelves sustaining bottles and tankards. Six or
  • seven individuals were sitting about the room. They had a numerous
  • effect. There was a man in very light floury tweeds, with a floury bloom
  • on his face and hair and an anxious depressed expression. He was clearly
  • a baker. He sat forward as though he nursed something precious under the
  • table. Next him was a respectable-looking, regular-featured fair man
  • with a large head, and a ruddy-faced butcher-like individual smoked a
  • clay pipe by the side of the fireplace. A further individual with an
  • alert intrusive look might have been a grocer’s assistant associating
  • above himself.
  • “Evening,” said the Captain.
  • “Evening,” said the man with the large hand guardedly.
  • The Captain came to the hearthrug with an affectation of ease.
  • “I suppose,” he began, “that you haven’t any of you seen anything of a
  • small boy, wandering about. He’s a little chap about thirteen. Sturdy,
  • resolute-looking little fellow with a high colour, short wiry hair,
  • rather dark....”
  • He stopped short, arrested by the excited movements of the butcher’s
  • pipe and by the changed expressions of the rest of the company.
  • “We—we seen ’im,” the man with the big head managed to say at last.
  • “We seen ’im all right,” said a voice out of the darkness beyond the
  • range of the lamp.
  • The baker with the melancholy expression interjected, “I don’t care if I
  • don’t ever see ’im again.”
  • “Ah!” said the Captain, astonished to find himself suddenly beyond
  • hoping on a hot fresh scent. “Now all that’s very interesting. Where did
  • you see him?”
  • “Thunderin’ vicious little varmint,” said the butcher. “Owdacious.”
  • “Mr. Benshaw,” said the voice from the shadows, “’E’s arter ’im now with
  • a shot gun loaded up wi’ oats. ’E’ll pepper ’im if ’e gets ’im, Bill
  • will, you bet your ’at. And serve ’im jolly well right _tew_.”
  • “I doubt,” said the baker, “I doubt if I’ll ever get my stummik—not
  • thoroughly proper again. It’s a Blow I’ve ’ad. ’E give me a Blow. Oh!
  • Mr. ’Orrocks, _could_ I trouble you for another thimbleful of brandy?
  • Just a thimbleful neat. It eases the ache....”
  • CHAPTER VI
  • BEALBY AND THE TRAMP
  • § 1
  • Bealby was loth to leave the caravan party even when by his own gross
  • negligence it had ceased to be a caravan party. He made off regretfully
  • along the crest of the hills through bushes of yew and box until the
  • clamour of the disaster was no longer in his ears. Then he halted for a
  • time and stood sorrowing and listening and then turned up by a fence
  • along the border of a plantation and so came into a little overhung
  • road.
  • His ideas of his immediate future were vague in the extreme. He was a
  • receptive expectation. Since his departure from the gardener’s cottage
  • circumstances had handed him on. They had been interesting but unstable
  • circumstances. He supposed they would still hand him on. So far as he
  • had any definite view about his intentions it was that he was running
  • away to sea. And that he was getting hungry.
  • It was also, he presently discovered, getting dark very gently and
  • steadily. And the overhung road after some tortuosities expired suddenly
  • upon the bosom of a great grey empty common with distant mysterious
  • hedges.
  • It seemed high time to Bealby that something happened of a comforting
  • nature.
  • Always hitherto something or someone had come to his help when the world
  • grew dark and cold, and given him supper and put him or sent him to bed.
  • Even when he had passed a night in the interstices of Shonts he had
  • known there was a bed at quite a little distance under the stairs. If
  • only that loud Voice hadn’t shouted curses whenever he moved he would
  • have gone to it. But as he went across this common in the gloaming it
  • became apparent that this amiable routine was to be broken. For the
  • first time he realized the world could be a homeless world.
  • And it had become very still.
  • Disagreeably still, and full of ambiguous shadows.
  • That common was not only an unsheltered place, he felt, but an
  • unfriendly place, and he hurried to a gate at the further end. He kept
  • glancing to the right and to the left. It would be pleasanter when he
  • had got through that gate and shut it after him.
  • In England there are no grey wolves.
  • Yet at times one thinks of wolves, grey wolves, the colour of twilight
  • and running noiselessly, almost noiselessly, at the side of their prey
  • for quite a long time before they close in on it.
  • In England, I say, there are no grey wolves.
  • Wolves were extinguished in the reign of Edward the Third; it was in the
  • histories, and since then no free wolf has trod the soil of England;
  • only menagerie captives.
  • Of course there may be _escaped_ wolves!
  • Now the gate!—sharp through it and slam it behind you, and a little
  • brisk run and so into this plantation that slopes down hill. This is a
  • sort of path; vague, but it must be a path. Let us hope it is a path.
  • _What was that among the trees?_
  • It stopped, surely it stopped, as Bealby stopped. Pump, pump—. Of
  • course! that was one’s heart.
  • Nothing there! Just fancy. Wolves live in the open; they do not come
  • into woods like this. And besides, there are no wolves. And if one
  • shouts—even if it is but a phantom voice one produces, they go away.
  • They are cowardly things—really. Such as there aren’t.
  • And there is the power of the human eye.
  • Which is why they stalk you and watch you and evade you when you look
  • and creep and creep and creep behind you!
  • Turn sharply.
  • Nothing.
  • How this stuff rustled under the feet! In woods at twilight, with
  • innumerable things darting from trees and eyes watching you everywhere,
  • it would be pleasanter if one could walk without making quite such a
  • row. Presently, surely, Bealby told himself, he would come out on a high
  • road and meet other people and say “good-night” as they passed. Jolly
  • other people they would be, answering, “Good-night.” He was now going at
  • a moistening trot. It was getting darker and he stumbled against things.
  • When you tumble down wolves leap. Not of course that there _are_ any
  • wolves.
  • It was stupid to keep thinking of wolves in this way. Think of something
  • else. Think of things beginning with a B. Beautiful things, boys, beads,
  • butterflies, bears. The mind stuck at bears. _Are there such things as
  • long grey bears?_ Ugh! Almost endless, noiseless bears?...
  • It grew darker until at last the trees were black. The night was
  • swallowing up the flying Bealby and he had a preposterous persuasion
  • that it had teeth and would begin at the back of his legs....
  • § 2
  • “Hi!” cried Bealby weakly, hailing the glow of the fire out of the
  • darkness of the woods above.
  • The man by the fire peered at the sound; he had been listening to the
  • stumbling footsteps for some time, and he answered nothing.
  • In another minute Bealby had struggled through the hedge into the
  • visible world and stood regarding the man by the fire. The phantom
  • wolves had fled beyond Sirius. But Bealby’s face was pale still from the
  • terrors of the pursuit and altogether he looked a smallish sort of small
  • boy.
  • “Lost?” said the man by the fire.
  • “Couldn’t find my way,” said Bealby.
  • “Anyone with you?”
  • “No.”
  • The man reflected. “Tired?”
  • “Bit.”
  • “Come and sit down by the fire and rest yourself.
  • “I won’t ’urt you,” he added as Bealby hesitated.
  • So far in his limited experience Bealby had never seen a human
  • countenance lit from behind by a flickering red flame. The effect he
  • found remarkable rather than pleasing. It gave this stranger the most
  • active and unstable countenance Bealby had ever seen. The nose seemed to
  • be in active oscillation between pug and Roman, the eyes jumped out of
  • black caves and then went back into them, the more permanent features
  • appeared to be a vast triangle of neck and chin. The tramp would have
  • impressed Bealby as altogether inhuman if it had not been for the smell
  • of cooking he diffused. There were onions in it and turnips and
  • pepper—mouth-watering constituents, testimonials to virtue. He was
  • making a stew in an old can that he had slung on a cross stick over a
  • brisk fire of twigs that he was constantly replenishing.
  • “I won’t ’urt you, darn you,” he repeated. “Come and sit down on these
  • leaves here for a bit and tell me all abart it.”
  • Bealby did as he was desired. “I got lost,” he said, feeling too
  • exhausted to tell a good story.
  • The tramp, examined more closely, became less pyrotechnic. He had a
  • large loose mouth, a confused massive nose, much long fair hair, a broad
  • chin with a promising beard and spots—a lot of spots. His eyes looked
  • out of deep sockets and they were sharp little eyes. He was a lean man.
  • His hands were large and long and they kept on with the feeding of the
  • fire as he sat and talked to Bealby. Once or twice he leant forward and
  • smelt the pot judiciously, but all the time the little eyes watched
  • Bealby very closely.
  • “Lose yer collar?” said the tramp.
  • Bealby felt for his collar. “I took it orf,” he said.
  • “Come far?”
  • “Over there,” said Bealby.
  • “Where?”
  • “Over there.”
  • “What place?”
  • “Don’t know the name of it.”
  • “Then it ain’t your ’ome?”
  • “No.”
  • “You’ve run away,” said the man.
  • “Pr’aps I ’ave,” said Bealby.
  • “Pr’aps you ’ave! Why pr’aps? You _’ave_! What’s the good of telling
  • lies abart it? When’d you start?”
  • “Monday,” said Bealby.
  • The tramp reflected. “Had abart enough of it?”
  • “Dunno,” said Bealby truthfully.
  • “Like some soup?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “’Ow much?”
  • “I could do with a lot,” said Bealby.
  • “Ah yah! I didn’t mean that. I meant, ’ow much for some? ’Ow much will
  • you pay for a nice, nice ’arf can of soup? I ain’t a darn charity. See?”
  • “Tuppence,” said Bealby.
  • The tramp shook his head slowly from side to side and took out the
  • battered iron spoon he was using to stir the stuff and tasted the soup
  • lusciously. It was—jolly good soup and there were potatoes in it.
  • “Thrippence,” said Bealby.
  • “’Ow much you got?” asked the tramp.
  • Bealby hesitated perceptibly. “Sixpence,” he said weakly.
  • “It’s sixpence,” said the tramp. “Pay up.”
  • “’Ow big a can?” asked Bealby.
  • The tramp felt about in the darkness behind him and produced an empty
  • can with a jagged mouth that had once contained, the label witnessed—I
  • quote, I do not justify—‘_Deep Sea Salmon_.’ “That,” he said, “and this
  • chunk of bread.... Right enough?”
  • “You _will_ do it?” said Bealby.
  • “Do I look a swindle?” cried the tramp, and suddenly a lump of the
  • abundant hair fell over one eye in a singularly threatening manner.
  • Bealby handed over the sixpence without further discussion. “I’ll treat
  • you fairly, you see,” said the tramp, after he had spat on and pocketed
  • the sixpence, and he did as much. He decided that the soup was ready to
  • be served and he served it with care. Bealby began at once. “There’s a
  • nextry onion,” said the tramp, throwing one over. “It didn’t cost me
  • much and I gives it you for nothin’. That’s all right, eh? Here’s
  • ’ealth!”
  • Bealby consumed his soup and bread meekly with one eye upon his host. He
  • would, he decided, eat all he could and then sit a little while, and
  • then get this tramp to tell him the way to—anywhere else. And the tramp
  • wiped soup out of his can with gobbets of bread very earnestly and
  • meditated sagely on Bealby.
  • “You better pal in with me, matey, for a bit,” he said at last. “You
  • can’t go nowhere else—not to-night.”
  • “Couldn’t I walk perhaps to a town or sumpthing?”
  • “These woods ain’t safe.”
  • “’Ow d’you mean?”
  • “Ever ’eard tell of a gurrillia?—sort of big black monkey thing.”
  • “Yes,” said Bealby faintly.
  • “There’s been one loose abart ’ere—oh week or more. Fact. And if you
  • wasn’t a grown up man quite and going along in the dark, well—’e might
  • say something _to_ you.... Of course ’e wouldn’t do nothing where there
  • was a fire or a man—but a little chap like you. I wouldn’t like to let
  • you do it, ’strewth I wouldn’t. It’s risky. Course I don’t want to
  • _keep_ you. There it is. You go if you like. But I’d rather you didn’t.
  • ’Onest.”
  • “Where’d he come from?” asked Bealby.
  • “M’nagery,” said the tramp.
  • “’E very near bit through the fist of a chap that tried to stop ’im,”
  • said the tramp.
  • Bealby after weighing tramp and gorilla very carefully in his mind
  • decided he wouldn’t and drew closer to the fire—but not too close—and
  • the conversation deepened.
  • § 3
  • It was a long and rambling conversation and the tramp displayed himself
  • at times as quite an amiable person. It was a discourse varied by
  • interrogations, and as a thread of departure and return it dealt with
  • the life of the road and with life at large and—life, and with matters
  • of ‘must’ and ‘may.’
  • Sometimes and more particularly at first Bealby felt as though a
  • ferocious beast lurked in the tramp and peeped out through the fallen
  • hank of hair and might leap out upon him, and sometimes he felt the
  • tramp was large and fine and gay and amusing, more particularly when he
  • lifted his voice and his bristling chin. And ever and again the talker
  • became a nasty creature and a disgusting creature, and his red-lit face
  • was an ugly creeping approach that made Bealby recoil. And then again he
  • was strong and wise. So the unstable needle of a boy’s moral compass
  • spins.
  • The tramp used strange terms. He spoke of the ‘deputy’ and the
  • ‘doss-house,’ of the ‘spike’ and ‘padding the hoof,’ of ‘screevers’ and
  • ‘tarts’ and ‘copper’s narks.’ To these words Bealby attached such
  • meanings as he could, and so the things of which the tramp talked
  • floated unsurely into his mind and again and again he had to readjust
  • and revise his interpretations. And through these dim and fluctuating
  • veils a new side of life dawned upon his consciousness, a side that was
  • strange and lawless and dirty—in every way dirty—and dreadful
  • and—attractive. That was the queer thing about it, that attraction. It
  • had humour. For all its squalor and repulsiveness it was lit by defiance
  • and laughter, bitter laughter perhaps, but laughter. It had a gaiety
  • that Mr. Mergleson for example did not possess, it had a penetration,
  • like the penetrating quality of onions or acids or asafœtida, that made
  • the memory of Mr. Darling insipid.
  • The tramp assumed from the outset that Bealby had ‘done something’ and
  • run away, and some mysterious etiquette prevented his asking directly
  • what was the nature of his offence. But he made a number of insidious
  • soundings. And he assumed that Bealby was taking to the life of the road
  • and that, until good cause to the contrary appeared, they were to remain
  • together. “It’s a tough life,” he said, “but it has its points, and you
  • got a toughish look about you.”
  • He talked of roads and the quality of roads and countryside. This was a
  • good countryside; it wasn’t overdone and there was no great hostility to
  • wanderers and sleeping out. Some roads—the London to Brighton for
  • example, if a chap struck a match, somebody came running. But here
  • unless you went pulling the haystacks about too much they left you
  • alone. And they weren’t such dead nuts on their pheasants, and one had a
  • chance of an empty cowshed. “If I’ve spotted a shed or anything with a
  • roof to it I stay out,” said the tramp, “even if it’s raining cats and
  • dogs. Otherwise it’s the doss-’ouse or the ‘spike.’ It’s the rain is the
  • worst thing—getting wet. You haven’t been wet yet, not if you only
  • started Monday. Wet—with a chilly wind to drive it. Gaw! I been blown
  • out of a holly hedge. You _would_ think there’d be protection in a holly
  • hedge....
  • “Spike’s the last thing,” said the tramp. “I’d rather go bare-gutted to
  • a doss-’ouse anywhen. Gaw!—you’ve not ’ad your first taste of the spike
  • yet.”
  • But it wasn’t heaven in the doss-houses. He spoke of several of the
  • landladies in strange but it would seem unflattering terms. “And there’s
  • always such a blamed lot of washing going on in a doss-’ouse. Always
  • washing they are! One chap’s washing ’is socks and another’s washing ’is
  • shirt. Making a steam drying it. Disgustin’. Carn’t see what they want
  • with it all. Barnd to git dirty again....”
  • He discoursed of spikes, that is to say of work-houses, and of masters.
  • “And then,” he said, with revolting yet alluring adjectives, “there’s
  • the bath.”
  • “That’s the worst side of it,” said the tramp.... “’Owever, it doesn’t
  • always rain, and if it doesn’t rain, well, you can keep yourself dry.”
  • He came back to the pleasanter aspects of the nomadic life. He was all
  • for the outdoor style. “Ain’t we comfortable ’ere?” he asked. He
  • sketched out the simple larcenies that had contributed and given zest to
  • the evening’s meal. But it seemed there were also doss-houses that had
  • the agreeable side. “Never been in one!” he said. “But where you been
  • sleeping since Monday?”
  • Bealby described the caravan in phrases that seemed suddenly thin and
  • anæmic to his ears.
  • “You hit it lucky,” said the tramp. “If a chap’s a kid he strikes all
  • sorts of luck of that sort. Now ef _I_ come up against three ladies
  • travellin’ in a van—think they’d arst me in? Not it!”
  • He dwelt with manifest envy on the situation and the possibilities of
  • the situation for some time. “You ain’t dangerous,” he said; “that’s
  • where you get in....”
  • He consoled himself by anecdotes of remarkable good fortunes of a
  • kindred description. Apparently he sometimes travelled in the company of
  • a lady named Izzy Berners—“a fair scorcher, been a regular, slap-up
  • circus actress.” And there was also “good old Susan.” It was a little
  • difficult for Bealby to see the point of some of these flashes by a
  • tendency on the part of the tramp while his thoughts turned on these
  • matters to adopt a staccato style of speech, punctuated by brief, darkly
  • significant guffaws. There grew in the mind of Bealby a vision of the
  • doss-house as a large crowded place, lit by a great central fire, with
  • much cooking afoot and much jawing and disputing going on, and then “me
  • and Izzy sailed in....”
  • The fire sank, the darkness of the woods seemed to creep nearer. The
  • moonlight pierced the trees only in long beams that seemed to point
  • steadfastly at unseen things, it made patches of ashen light that looked
  • like watching faces. Under the tramp’s direction Bealby skirmished round
  • and got sticks and fed the fire until the darkness and thoughts of a
  • possible gorilla were driven back for some yards and the tramp
  • pronounced the blaze a “fair treat.” He had made a kind of bed of leaves
  • which he now invited Bealby to extend and share, and lying feet to the
  • fire he continued his discourse.
  • He talked of stealing and cheating by various endearing names; he made
  • these enterprises seem adventurous and facetious; there was it seemed a
  • peculiar sort of happy find one came upon called a “flat,” that it was
  • not only entertaining but obligatory to swindle. He made fraud seem so
  • smart and bright at times that Bealby found it difficult to keep a firm
  • grasp on the fact that it was—fraud....
  • Bealby lay upon the leaves close up to the prone body of the tramp, and
  • his mind and his standards became confused. The tramp’s body was a dark
  • but protecting ridge on one side of him; he could not see the fire
  • beyond his toes but its flickerings were reflected by the tree stems
  • about them, and made perplexing sudden movements that at times caught
  • his attention and made him raise his head to watch them.... Against the
  • terrors of the night the tramp had become humanity, the species, the
  • moral basis. His voice was full of consolation; his topics made one
  • forget the watchful silent circumambient. Bealby’s first distrusts
  • faded. He began to think the tramp a fine, brotherly, generous fellow.
  • He was also growing accustomed to a faint something—shall I call it an
  • olfactory bar—that had hitherto kept them apart. The monologue ceased to
  • devote itself to the elucidation of Bealby; the tramp was lying on his
  • back with his fingers interlaced beneath his head and talking not so
  • much to his companion as to the stars and the universe at large. His
  • theme was no longer the wandering life simply but the wandering life as
  • he had led it, and the spiritedness with which he had led it and the
  • real and admirable quality of himself. It was that soliloquy of
  • consolation which is the secret preservative of innumerable lives.
  • He wanted to make it perfectly clear that he was a tramp by choice. He
  • also wanted to make it clear that he was a tramp and no better because
  • of the wicked folly of those he had trusted and the evil devices of
  • enemies. In the world that contained those figures of spirit; Isopel
  • Berners and Susan, there was also it seemed a bad and spiritless person,
  • the tramp’s wife, who had done him many passive injuries. It was clear
  • she did not appreciate her blessings. She had been much to blame.
  • “Anybody’s opinion is better than ’er ’usband’s,” said the tramp.
  • “Always ’as been.” Bealby had a sudden memory of Mr. Darling saying
  • exactly the same thing of his mother. “She’s the sort,” said the tramp,
  • “what would rather go to a meetin’ than a music ’all. She’d rather drop
  • a shilling down a crack than spend it on anything decent. If there was a
  • choice of jobs going she’d ask which ’ad the lowest pay and the longest
  • hours and she’d choose _that_. She’d feel safer. She was born scared.
  • When there wasn’t anything else to do she’d stop at ’ome and scrub the
  • floors. Gaw! it made a chap want to put the darn’ pail over ’er ’ed,
  • so’s she’d get enough of it....
  • “I don’t hold with all this crawling through life and saying _Please_,”
  • said the tramp. “I say it’s _my_ world just as much as it’s _your_
  • world. You may have your ’orses and carriages, your ’ouses and country
  • places and all that and you may think Gawd sent me to run abart and work
  • for you; but _I_ don’t. See?”
  • Bealby saw.
  • “I seek my satisfactions just as you seek your satisfactions, and if you
  • want to get me to work you’ve jolly well got to make me. I don’t choose
  • to work. I choose to keep on my own and a bit loose and take my chance
  • where I find it. You got to take your chances in this world. Sometimes
  • they come bad and sometimes they come good. And very often you can’t
  • tell which it is when they ’ave come....”
  • Then he fell questioning Bealby again and then he talked of the
  • immediate future. He was beating for the seaside. “Always something
  • doing,” he said. “You got to keep your eye on for cops; those seaside
  • benches, they’re ’ot on tramps—give you a month for begging soon as look
  • at you—but there’s flats dropping sixpences thick as flies on a sore
  • ’orse. You want a there for all sorts of jobs. You’re just the chap for
  • it, matey. Saw it soon’s ever I set eyes on you....”
  • He made projects....
  • Finally he became more personal and very flattering.
  • “Now you and me,” he said, suddenly shifting himself quite close to
  • Bealby, “we’re going to be downright pals. I’ve took a liking to you. Me
  • and you are going to pal together. See?”
  • He breathed into Bealby’s face, and laid a hand on his knee and squeezed
  • it, and Bealby, on the whole, felt honoured by his protection....
  • § 4
  • In the unsympathetic light of a bright and pushful morning the tramp was
  • shorn of much of his overnight glamour. It became manifest that he was
  • not merely offensively unshaven, but extravagantly dirty. It was not
  • ordinary rural dirt. During the last few days he must have had dealings
  • of an intimate nature with coal. He was taciturn and irritable, he
  • declared that this sleeping out would be the death of him and the
  • breakfast was only too manifestly wanting in the comforts of a refined
  • home. He seemed a little less embittered after breakfast, he became even
  • faintly genial, but he remained unpleasing. A distaste for the tramp
  • arose in Bealby’s mind and as he walked on behind his guide and friend,
  • he revolved schemes of unobtrusive detachment.
  • Far be it from me to accuse Bealby of ingratitude. But it is true that
  • that same disinclination which made him a disloyal assistant to Mr.
  • Mergleson was now affecting his comradeship with the tramp. And he was
  • deceitful. He allowed the tramp to build projects in the confidence of
  • his continued adhesion, he did not warn him of the defection he
  • meditated. But on the other hand Bealby had acquired from his mother an
  • effective horror of stealing. And one must admit, since the tramp
  • admitted it, that the man stole.
  • And another little matter had at the same time estranged Bealby from the
  • tramp and linked the two of them together. The attentive reader will
  • know that Bealby had exactly two shillings and twopence-halfpenny when
  • he came down out of the woods to the fireside. He had Mrs. Bowles’
  • half-crown and the balance of Madeleine Philips’ theatre shilling, minus
  • sixpence halfpenny for a collar and sixpence he had given the tramp for
  • the soup overnight. But all this balance was now in the pocket of the
  • tramp. Money talks and the tramp had heard it. He had not taken it away
  • from Bealby, but he had obtained it in this manner: “We two are pals,”
  • he said, “and one of us had better be Treasurer. That’s Me. I know the
  • ropes better. So hand over what you got there, matey.”
  • And after he had pointed out that a refusal might lead to Bealby’s
  • evisceration the transfer occurred. Bealby was searched, kindly but
  • firmly....
  • It seemed to the tramp that this trouble had now blown over completely.
  • Little did he suspect the rebellious and treacherous thoughts that
  • seethed in the head of his companion. Little did he suppose that his
  • personal appearance, his manners, his ethical flavour—nay, even his
  • physical flavour—were being judged in a spirit entirely unamiable. It
  • seemed to him that he had obtained youthful and subservient
  • companionship, companionship that would be equally agreeable and useful;
  • he had adopted a course that he imagined would cement the ties between
  • them; he reckoned not with ingratitude. “If anyone arsts you who I am,
  • call me uncle,” he said. He walked along, a little in advance, sticking
  • his toes out right and left in a peculiar wide pace that characterized
  • his walk, and revolving schemes for the happiness and profit of the day.
  • To begin with—great draughts of beer. Then tobacco. Later perhaps a
  • little bread and cheese for Bealby. “You can’t come in ’ere,” he said at
  • the first public house. “You’re under age, me boy. It ain’t my doing,
  • matey; it’s ’Erbert Samuel. You blame ’im. ’E don’t objec’ to you going
  • to work for any other Mr. Samuel there may ’appen to be abart or
  • anything of that sort, that’s good for you, that is; but ’e’s most
  • particular you shouldn’t go into a public ’ouse. So you just wait abart
  • outside ’ere. _I’ll_ ’ave my eye on you.”
  • “You going to spend my money?” asked Bealby.
  • “I’m going to ration the party,” said the tramp.
  • “You—you got no right to spend my money,” said Bealby.
  • “I—’Ang it!—I’ll get you some acid drops,” said the tramp in tones of
  • remonstrance. “I tell you, blame you,—it’s ‘Erbert Samuel.’ I can’t ’elp
  • it! I can’t fight against the lor.”
  • “You haven’t any right to spend my money,” said Bealby.
  • “_Downt_ cut up crusty. ’Ow can _I_ ’elp it?”
  • “I’ll tell a policeman. You gimme back my money and lemme go.”
  • The tramp considered the social atmosphere. It did not contain a
  • policeman. It contained nothing but a peaceful kindly corner public
  • house, a sleeping dog and the back of an elderly man digging.
  • The tramp approached Bealby in a confidential manner. “’Oo’s going to
  • believe you?” he said. “And besides, ’ow did you come by it?
  • “Moreover, _I_ ain’t going to spend _your_ money. I got money of my own.
  • _’Ere!_ See?” And suddenly before the dazzled eyes of Bealby he held and
  • instantly withdrew three shillings and two coppers that seemed familiar.
  • He had had a shilling of his own....
  • Bealby waited outside....
  • The tramp emerged in a highly genial mood, with acid drops, and a short
  • clay pipe going strong. “’Ere,” he said to Bealby with just the faintest
  • flavour of magnificence over the teeth-held pipe and handed over not
  • only the acid drops but a virgin short clay. “Fill,” he said, proffering
  • the tobacco. “It’s yours jus’ much as it’s mine. Be’r not let ’Erbert
  • Samuel see you, though; that’s all. ’E’s got a lor abart it.”
  • Bealby held his pipe in his clenched hand. He had already smoked—once.
  • He remembered it quite vividly still, although it had happened six
  • months ago. Yet he hated not using that tobacco. “No,” he said, “I’ll
  • smoke later.”
  • The tramp replaced the screw of red Virginia in his pocket with the air
  • of one who has done the gentlemanly thing....
  • They went on their way, an ill-assorted couple.
  • All day Bealby chafed at the tie and saw the security in the tramp’s
  • pocket vanish. They lunched on bread and cheese and then the tramp had a
  • good sustaining drink of beer for both of them and after that they came
  • to a common where it seemed agreeable to repose. And after a due meed of
  • repose in a secluded hollow among the gorse the tramp produced a pack of
  • exceedingly greasy cards and taught Bealby to play Euchre. Apparently
  • the tramp had no distinctive pockets in his tail coat, the whole lining
  • was one capacious pocket. Various knobs and bulges indicated his cooking
  • tin, his feeding tin, a turnip and other unknown properties. At first
  • they played for love and then they played for the balance in the tramp’s
  • pocket. And by the time Bealby had learnt Euchre thoroughly, that
  • balance belonged to the tramp. But he was very generous about it and
  • said they would go on sharing just as they had done. And then he became
  • confidential. He scratched about in the bagginess of his garment and
  • drew out a little dark blade of stuff, like a flint implement, regarded
  • it gravely for a moment and held it out to Bealby. “Guess what this is.”
  • Bealby gave it up.
  • “Smell it.”
  • It smelt very nasty. One familiar smell indeed there was with a
  • paradoxical sanitary quality that he did not quite identify, but that
  • was a mere basis for a complex reek of acquisitions. “What is it?” said
  • Bealby.
  • “_Soap!_”
  • “But what’s it for?”
  • “I thought you’d arst that.... What’s soap usually for?”
  • “Washing,” said Bealby guessing wildly.
  • The tramp shook his head. “Making a foam,” he corrected. “That’s what I
  • has my fits with. See? I shoves a bit in my mouth and down I goes and I
  • rolls about. Making a sort of moaning sound. Why, I been given brandy
  • often—neat brandy.... It isn’t always a cert—nothing’s absolutely a
  • cert. I’ve ’ad some let-downs.... Once I was bit by a nasty little
  • dog—that brought me to pretty quick—and once I ’ad an old gentleman go
  • through my pockets. ‘Poor chap!’ ’e ses, ‘very likely ’e’s destitoot,
  • let’s see if ’e’s _got_ anything.’... I’d got all sorts of things, I
  • didn’t want _’im_ prying about. But I didn’t come to sharp enough to
  • stop ’im. Got me into trouble that did....
  • “It’s an old lay,” said the tramp, “but it’s astonishing ’ow it’ll go in
  • a quiet village. Sort of amuses ’em. Or dropping suddenly in front of a
  • bicycle party. Lot of them old tricks are the best tricks, and there
  • ain’t many of ’em Billy Bridget don’t know. That’s where you’re lucky to
  • ’ave met me, matey. Billy Bridget’s a ’ard man to starve. And I know the
  • ropes. I know what you _can_ do and what you can’t do. And I got a
  • feeling for a policeman—same as some people ’ave for cats. I’d know if
  • one was ’idden in the room....”
  • He expanded into anecdotes and the story of various encounters in which
  • he shone. It was amusing and it took Bealby on his weak side. Wasn’t he
  • the Champion Dodger of the Chelsome playground?
  • The tide of talk ebbed. “Well,” said the tramp, “time we was up and
  • doing....”
  • They went along shady lanes and across an open park and they skirted a
  • breezy common from which they could see the sea. And among other things
  • that the tramp said was this, “Time we began to forage a bit.”
  • He turned his large observant nose to the right of him and the left.
  • § 5
  • Throughout the afternoon the tramp discoursed upon the rights and wrongs
  • of property, in a way that Bealby found very novel and unsettling. The
  • tramp seemed to have his ideas about owning and stealing arranged quite
  • differently from those of Bealby. Never before had Bealby thought it
  • possible to have them arranged in any other than the way he knew. But
  • the tramp contrived to make most possession seem unrighteous and honesty
  • a code devised by those who have for those who haven’t. “They’ve just
  • got ’old of it,” he said. “They want to keep it to themselves.... Do I
  • look as though I’d stole much of anybody’s? It isn’t me got ’old of this
  • land and sticking up my notice boards to keep everybody off. It isn’t me
  • spends my days and nights scheming ’ow I can get ’old of more and more
  • of the stuff....
  • “I don’t _envy_ it ’em,” said the tramp. “Some ’as one taste and some
  • another. But when it comes to making all this fuss because a chap who
  • _isn’t_ a schemer ’elps ’imself to a mäthful,—well, it’s Rot....
  • “It’s them makes the rules of the game and nobody ever arst me to play
  • it. I don’t blame ’em, mind you. Me and you might very well do the same.
  • But brast me if I see where the sense of _my_ keeping the rules comes
  • in. This world ought to be a share out, Gawd meant it to be a share out.
  • And me and you—we been done out of our share. That justifies us.”
  • “It isn’t right to steal,” said Bealby.
  • “It isn’t right to steal—certainly. It isn’t right—but it’s universal.
  • Here’s a chap here over this fence, ask ’im where ’e got ’is land.
  • Stealing! What you call stealing, matey, _I_ call restitootion. You
  • ain’t probably never even ’eard of socialism.”
  • “I’ve ’eard of socialists right enough. Don’t believe in Gawd and
  • ’aven’t no morality.”
  • “Don’t you believe it. Why!—’Arf the socialists are parsons. What I’m
  • saying _is_ socialism—practically. _I’m_ a socialist. I know all abart
  • socialism. There isn’t nothing you can tell me abart socialism. Why!—for
  • three weeks I was one of these here Anti-Socialist speakers. Paid for
  • it. And I tell you there ain’t such a thing as property left; it’s all a
  • blooming old pinch. Lords, commons, judges, all of them, they’re just a
  • crew of brasted old fences and the lawyers getting in the stuff. Then
  • you talk to me of stealing! _Stealing!_”
  • The tramp’s contempt and his intense way of saying ‘stealing’ were very
  • unsettling to a sensitive mind.
  • They bought some tea and grease in a village shop and the tramp made tea
  • in his old tin with great dexterity and then they gnawed bread on which
  • two ounces of margarine had been generously distributed. “Live like
  • fighting cocks, we do,” said the tramp wiping out his simple cuisine
  • with the dragged-out end of his shirt sleeve. “And if I’m not very much
  • mistaken we’ll sleep to-night on a nice bit of hay....”
  • But these anticipations were upset by a sudden temptation, and instead
  • of a starry summer comfort the two were destined to spend a night of
  • suffering and remorse.
  • A green lane lured them off the road, and after some windings led them
  • past a field of wire-netted enclosures containing a number of perfect
  • and conceited-looking hens close beside a little cottage, a vegetable
  • garden and some new elaborate outhouses. It was manifestly a poultry
  • farm, and something about it gave the tramp the conviction that it had
  • been left, that nobody was at home.
  • These realizations are instinctive, they leap to the mind. He knew it,
  • and an ambition to know further what was in the cottage came with the
  • knowledge. But it seemed to him desirable that the work of exploration
  • should be done by Bealby. He had thought of dogs, and it seemed to him
  • that Bealby might be unembarrassed by that idea. So he put the thing to
  • Bealby. “Let’s have a look round ere,” he said. “You go in and see
  • what’s abart....”
  • There was some difference of opinion. “I don’t ask you to take
  • anything,” said the tramp.... “Nobody won’t catch you.... I tell you
  • nobody won’t catch you.... I tell you there ain’t nobody here to catch
  • you.... Just for the fun of seeing in. I’ll go up by them outhouses. And
  • I’ll see nobody comes.... Ain’t afraid to go up a garden path, are
  • you?... I tell you, I don’t want you to steal.... You ain’t got much
  • guts to funk a thing like that.... I’ll be abät too.... Thought you’d be
  • the very chap for a bit of scarting.... Thought Boy Scarts was all the
  • go nowadays.... Well, if you ain’t afraid you’d do it.... Well, why
  • didn’t you say you’d do it at the beginning?...”
  • Bealby went through the hedge and up a grass track between poultry runs,
  • made a cautious inspection of the outhouses and then approached the
  • cottage. Everything was still. He thought it more plausible to go to the
  • door than peep into the window. He rapped. Then after an interval of
  • stillness he lifted the latch, opened the door and peered into the room.
  • It was a pleasantly furnished room, and before the empty summer
  • fireplace a very old white man was sitting in a chintz-covered
  • arm-chair, lost it would seem in painful thought. He had a peculiar grey
  • shrunken look, his eyes were closed, a bony hand with the shiny texture
  • of alabaster gripped the chair arm.... There was something about him
  • that held Bealby quite still for a moment.
  • And this old gentleman behaved very oddly.
  • His body seemed to crumple into his chair, his hands slipped down from
  • the arms, his head nodded forwards and his mouth and eyes seemed to open
  • together. And he made a snoring sound....
  • For a moment Bealby remained rigidly agape and then a violent desire to
  • rejoin the tramp carried him back through the hen runs....
  • He tried to describe what he had seen.
  • “Asleep with his mouth open,” said the tramp. “Well, that ain’t anything
  • so wonderful! You _got_ anything? That’s what I want to know.... Did
  • anyone ever see such a boy? ’Ere! I’ll go....
  • “You keep a look out here,” said the tramp.
  • But there was something about that old man in there, something so
  • strange and alien to Bealby, that he could not remain alone in the
  • falling twilight. He followed the cautious advances of the tramp towards
  • the house. From the corner by the outhouses he saw the tramp go and peer
  • in at the open door. He remained for some time peering, his head hidden
  • from Bealby....
  • Then he went in....
  • Bealby had an extraordinary desire that somebody else would come. His
  • soul cried out for help against some vaguely apprehended terror. And in
  • the very moment of his wish came its fulfilment. He saw advancing up the
  • garden path a tall woman in a blue serge dress, hatless and hurrying and
  • carrying a little package—it was medicine—in her hand. And with her came
  • a big black dog. At the sight of Bealby the dog came forward barking and
  • Bealby after a moment’s hesitation turned and fled.
  • The dog was quick. But Bealby was quicker. He went up the netting of a
  • hen run and gave the dog no more than an ineffectual snap at his heels.
  • And then dashing from the cottage door came the tramp. Under one arm was
  • a brass-bound workbox and in the other was a candlestick and some
  • smaller articles. He did not instantly grasp the situation of his treed
  • companion, he was too anxious to escape the tall woman, and then with a
  • yelp of dismay he discovered himself between woman and dog. All too late
  • he sought to emulate Bealby. The workbox slipped from under his arm, the
  • rest of his plunder fell from him, for an uneasy moment he was clinging
  • to the side of the swaying hen run and then it had caved in and the dog
  • had got him.
  • The dog bit, desisted and then finding itself confronted by two men
  • retreated. Bealby and the tramp rolled and scrambled over the other side
  • of the collapsed netting into a parallel track and were halfway to the
  • hedge before the dog,—but this time in a less vehement fashion,—resumed
  • his attack.
  • He did not close with them again and at the hedge he halted altogether
  • and remained hacking the gloaming with his rage.
  • The woman it seemed had gone into the house, leaving the tramp’s
  • scattered loot upon the field of battle.
  • “This means mizzle,” said the tramp, leading the way at a trot.
  • Bealby saw no other course but to follow.
  • He had a feeling as though the world had turned against him. He did not
  • dare to think what he was nevertheless thinking of the events of these
  • crowded ten minutes. He felt he had touched something dreadful; that the
  • twilight was full of accusations.... He feared and hated the tramp now,
  • but he perceived something had linked them as they had not been linked
  • before. Whatever it was they shared it.
  • § 6
  • They fled through the night; it seemed to Bealby for interminable hours.
  • At last when they were worn out and footsore they crept through a gate
  • and found an uncomfortable cowering place in the corner of a field.
  • As they went they talked but little, but the tramp kept up a constant
  • muttering to himself. He was troubled by the thought of hydrophobia.
  • “I know I’ll ’ave it,” he said, “I know I’ll get it.”
  • Bealby after a time ceased to listen to his companion. His mind was
  • preoccupied. He could think of nothing but that very white man in the
  • chair and the strange manner of his movement.
  • “Was ’e awake when you saw ’im?” he asked at last.
  • “Awake—who?”
  • “That old man.”
  • For a moment or so the tramp said nothing. “’E wasn’t awake, you young
  • silly,” he said at last.
  • “But—wasn’t he?”
  • “Why!—don’t you know! ’E’d croaked,—popped off the ’ooks—very moment you
  • saw ’im.”
  • For a moment Bealby’s voice failed him.
  • Then he said quite faintly, “You mean—he’d —. Was dead?”
  • “Didn’t you know?” said the tramp. “Gaw! What a kid you are!”
  • In that manner it was Bealby first saw a dead man. Never before had he
  • seen anyone dead. And after that for all the night the old white man
  • pursued him, with strange slowly-opening eyes, and a head on one side
  • and his mouth suddenly and absurdly agape....
  • All night long that white figure presided over seas of dark dismay. It
  • seemed always to be there, and yet Bealby thought of a score of other
  • painful things. For the first time in his life he asked himself, “Where
  • am I going? What am I drifting to?” The world beneath the old man’s
  • dominance was a world of prisons.
  • Bealby believed he was a burglar and behind the darkness he imagined the
  • outraged law already seeking him. And the terrors of his associate
  • reinforced his own.
  • He tried to think what he should do in the morning. He dreaded the dawn
  • profoundly. But he could not collect his thoughts because of the tramp’s
  • incessant lapses into grumbling lamentation. Bealby knew he had to get
  • away from the tramp, but now he was too weary and alarmed to think of
  • running away as a possible expedient. And besides there was the matter
  • of his money. And beyond the range of the tramp’s voice there were
  • darknesses which to-night at least might hold inconceivable forms of
  • lurking evil. But could he not appeal to the law to save him? Repent?
  • Was there not something called turning King’s Evidence?
  • The moon was no comfort that night. Across it there passed with
  • incredible slowness a number of jagged little black clouds, blacker than
  • any clouds Bealby had ever seen before. They were like velvet palls,
  • lined with snowy fur. There was no end to them. And one at last most
  • horribly gaped slowly and opened a mouth....
  • § 7
  • At intervals there would be uncomfortable movements and the voice of the
  • tramp came out of the darkness beside Bealby lamenting his approaching
  • fate and discoursing—sometimes with violent expressions—on watch-dogs.
  • “I know I shall ’ave ’idrophobia,” said the tramp. “I’ve always ’ad a
  • disposition to ’idrophobia. Always a dread of water—and now it’s got me.
  • “Think of it!—keeping a beast to set at a ’uman being. Where’s the
  • brotherhood of it? Where’s the law and the humanity? Getting a animal to
  • set at a brother man. And a poisoned animal, a animal with death in his
  • teeth. And a ’orrible death too. Where’s the sense and brotherhood?
  • “Gaw! when I felt ’is teeth coming through my träsers—!
  • “Dogs oughtn’t to be allowed. They’re a noosance in the towns and a
  • danger in the country. They oughtn’t to be allowed anywhere—not till
  • every blessed ’uman being ’as got three square meals a day. Then if you
  • like, keep a dog. And see ’e’s a clean dog....
  • “Gaw! if I’d been a bit quicker up that ’en roost—!
  • “I ought to ’ave landed ’im a kick.
  • “It’s a man’s duty to ’urt a dog. When ’e sees a dog ’e ought to ’urt
  • ’im. It’s a natural ’atred. If dogs were what they ought to be, if dogs
  • understood ’ow they’re situated, there wouldn’t be a dog go for a man
  • ever.
  • “And if one did they’d shoot ’im....
  • “After this if ever I get a chance to land a dog a oner with a stone
  • I’ll land ’im one. I been too sorft with dogs....”
  • Towards dawn Bealby slept uneasily, to be awakened by the loud snorting
  • curiosity of three lively young horses. He sat up in a blinding sunshine
  • and saw the tramp looking very filthy and contorted, sleeping with his
  • mouth wide open and an expression of dismay and despair on his face.
  • § 8
  • Bealby took his chance to steal away next morning while the tramp was
  • engaged in artificial epilepsy.
  • “I feel like fits this morning,” said the tramp. “I could do it well. I
  • want a bit of human kindness again. After that brasted dog.
  • “I expect soon I’ll ’ave the foam all right withat any soap.”
  • They marked down a little cottage before which a benevolent-looking
  • spectacled old gentleman in a large straw hat and a thin alpaca jacket
  • was engaged in budding roses. Then they retired to prepare. The tramp
  • handed over to Bealby various compromising possessions, which might
  • embarrass an afflicted person under the searching hands of charity.
  • There was for example the piece of soap after he had taken sufficient
  • for his immediate needs, there was ninepence in money, there were the
  • pack of cards with which they had played Euchre, a key or so and some
  • wires, much assorted string, three tins, a large piece of bread, the end
  • of a composite candle, a box of sulphur matches, list slippers, a pair
  • of gloves, a clasp knife, sundry grey rags. They all seemed to have the
  • distinctive flavour of the tramp....
  • “If you do a bunk with these,” said the tramp. “By Gawd—.”
  • He drew his finger across his throat.
  • (King’s Evidence.)
  • Bealby from a safe distance watched the beginnings of the fit and it
  • impressed him as a thoroughly nasty kind of fit. He saw the elderly
  • gentleman hurry out of the cottage and stand for a moment looking over
  • his little green garden gate, surveying the sufferings of the tramp with
  • an expression of intense yet discreet commiseration. Then suddenly he
  • was struck by an idea; he darted in among his rose bushes and reappeared
  • with a big watering-can and an enormous syringe. Still keeping the gate
  • between himself and the sufferer he loaded his syringe very carefully
  • and deliberately....
  • Bealby would have liked to have seen more but he felt his moment had
  • come. Another instant and it might be gone again. Very softly he dropped
  • from the gate on which he was sitting and made off like a running
  • partridge along the hedge of the field.
  • Just for a moment did he halt—at a strange sharp yelp that came from the
  • direction of the little cottage. Then his purpose of flight resumed its
  • control of him.
  • He would strike across country for two or three miles, then make for the
  • nearest police station and give himself up. (Loud voices. Was that the
  • tramp murdering the benevolent old gentleman in the straw hat or was it
  • the benevolent old gentleman in the straw hat murdering the tramp? No
  • time to question. Onward, Onward!) The tramp’s cans rattled in his
  • pocket. He drew one out, hesitated a moment and flung it away and then
  • sent its two companions after it....
  • He found his police station upon the road between Someport and
  • Crayminster, a little peaceful rural station, a mere sunny cottage with
  • a blue and white label and a notice board covered with belated bills
  • about the stealing of pheasants’ eggs. And another bill—.
  • It was headed MISSING and the next most conspicuous words were £5 REWARD
  • and the next ARTHUR BEALBY.
  • He was fascinated. So swift, so terribly swift is the law. Already they
  • knew of his burglary, of his callous participation in the robbing of a
  • dead man. Already the sleuths were upon his trail. So surely did his
  • conscience strike to this conclusion that even the carelessly worded
  • offer of a reward that followed his description conveyed no different
  • intimation to his mind. “To whomsoever will bring him back to Lady
  • Laxton, at Shonts near Chelsmore,” so it ran.
  • “And out of pocket expenses.”
  • And even as Bealby read this terrible document, the door of the police
  • station opened and a very big pink young policeman came out and stood
  • regarding the world in a friendly, self-approving manner. He had
  • innocent, happy, blue eyes; thus far he had had much to do with order
  • and little with crime; and his rosebud mouth would have fallen open, had
  • not discipline already closed it and set upon it the beginnings of a
  • resolute expression that accorded ill with the rest of his open
  • freshness. And when he had surveyed the sky and the distant hills and
  • the little rose bushes that occupied the leisure of the force, his eyes
  • fell upon Bealby....
  • Indecision has ruined more men than wickedness. And when one has slept
  • rough and eaten nothing and one is conscious of a marred unclean
  • appearance, it is hard to face one’s situations. What Bealby had
  • intended to do was to go right up to a policeman and say to him, simply
  • and frankly: “I want to turn King’s Evidence, please. I was in that
  • burglary where there was a dead old man and a workbox and a woman and a
  • dog. I was led astray by a bad character and I did not mean to do it.
  • And really it was him that did it and not me.”
  • But now his tongue clove to the roof of his mouth, he felt he could not
  • speak, could not go through with it. His heart had gone down into his
  • feet. Perhaps he had caught the tramp’s constitutional aversion to the
  • police. He affected not to see the observant figure in the doorway. He
  • assumed a slack careless bearing like one who reads by chance idly. He
  • lifted his eyebrows to express unconcern. He pursed his mouth to whistle
  • but no whistle came. He stuck his hands into his pockets, pulled up his
  • feet as one pulls up plants by the roots and strolled away.
  • He quickened his stroll as he supposed by imperceptible degrees. He
  • glanced back and saw that the young policeman had come out of the
  • station and was reading the notice. And as the young policeman read he
  • looked ever and again at Bealby like one who checks off items.
  • Bealby quickened his pace and then, doing his best to suggest by the
  • movements of his back a more boyish levity quite unconnected with the
  • law, he broke into a trot.
  • Then presently he dropped back into a walking pace, pretended to see
  • something in the hedge, stopped and took a sidelong look at the young
  • policeman.
  • He was coming along with earnest strides; every movement of his
  • suggested a stealthy hurry!
  • Bealby trotted and then becoming almost frank about it ran. He took to
  • his heels.
  • From the first it was not really an urgent chase; it was a stalking
  • rather than a hunt, because the young policeman was too young and shy
  • and lacking in confidence really to run after a boy without any definite
  • warrant for doing so. When anyone came along he would drop into a smart
  • walk and pretend not to be looking at Bealby but just going somewhere
  • briskly. And after two miles of it he desisted, and stood for a time
  • watching a heap of mangold wurzel directly and the disappearance of
  • Bealby obliquely, and then when Bealby was quite out of sight he turned
  • back thoughtfully towards his proper place.
  • On the whole he considered he was well out of it. He might have made a
  • fool of himself....
  • And yet,—five pounds reward!
  • CHAPTER VII
  • THE BATTLE OF CRAYMINSTER
  • § 1
  • Bealby was beginning to realize that running away from one’s situation
  • and setting up for oneself is not so easy and simple a thing as it had
  • appeared during those first days with the caravan. Three things he
  • perceived had arisen to pursue him, two that followed in the daylight,
  • the law and the tramp, and a third that came back at twilight, the
  • terror of the darkness. And within there was a hollow faintness, for the
  • afternoon was far advanced and he was extremely hungry. He had dozed
  • away the early afternoon in the weedy corner of a wood. But for his
  • hunger I think he would have avoided Crayminster.
  • Within a mile of that place he had come upon the ‘Missing’ notice again
  • stuck to the end of a barn. He had passed it askance, and then with a
  • sudden inspiration returned and tore it down. Somehow with the daylight
  • his idea of turning King’s Evidence against the tramp had weakened. He
  • no longer felt sure.
  • Mustn’t one wait and be asked first to turn King’s Evidence?
  • Suppose they said he had merely confessed....
  • The Crayminster street had a picturesque nutritious look. Half-way down
  • it was the White Hart with cyclist club signs on its walls and geraniums
  • over a white porch, and beyond a house being built and already at the
  • roofing pitch. To the right was a baker’s shop diffusing a delicious
  • suggestion of buns and cake and to the left a little comfortable
  • sweetstuff window and a glimpse of tables and a board: ‘Teas.’ Tea! He
  • resolved to break into his ninepence boldly and generously. Very likely
  • they would boil him an egg for a penny or so. Yet on the other hand if
  • he just had three or four buns, soft new buns. He hovered towards the
  • baker’s shop and stopped short. That bill was in the window!
  • He wheeled about sharply and went into the sweetstuff shop and found a
  • table with a white cloth and a motherly little woman in a large cap.
  • Tea? He could have an egg and some thick bread and butter and a cup of
  • tea for fivepence. He sat down respectfully to await her preparations.
  • But he was uneasy.
  • He knew quite well that she would ask him questions. For that he was
  • prepared. He said he was walking from his home in London to Someport to
  • save the fare. “But you’re so dirty!” said the motherly little woman. “I
  • sent my luggage by post, ma’m, and I lost my way and didn’t get it. And
  • I don’t much mind, ma’m, if you don’t. Not washing....”
  • All that he thought he did quite neatly. But he wished there was not
  • that bill in the baker’s window opposite and he wished he hadn’t quite
  • such a hunted feeling. A faint claustrophobia affected him. He felt the
  • shop might be a trap. He would be glad to get into the open again. Was
  • there a way out behind if for example a policeman blocked the door? He
  • hovered to the entrance while his egg was boiling and then when he saw a
  • large fat baker surveying the world with an afternoon placidity upon his
  • face, he went back and sat by the table. He wondered if the baker had
  • noted him.
  • He had finished his egg; he was drinking his tea with appreciative
  • noises, when he discovered that the baker _had_ noted him. Bealby’s
  • eyes, at first inanely open above the tilting tea cup, were suddenly
  • riveted on something that was going on in the baker’s window. From where
  • he sat he could see that detestable bill, and then slowly, feeling about
  • for it, he beheld a hand and a floury sleeve. The bill was drawn up and
  • vanished and then behind a glass shelf of fancy bread and a glass shelf
  • of buns something pink and indistinct began to move jerkily.... It was a
  • human face and it was trying to peer into the little refreshment shop
  • that sheltered Bealby....
  • Bealby’s soul went faint.
  • He had one inadequate idea. “Might I go out,” he said, “by your back
  • way?”
  • “There isn’t a back way,” said the motherly little woman. “There’s a
  • yard—.”
  • “If I might,” said Bealby, and was out in it.
  • No way at all! High walls on every side. He was back like a shot in the
  • shop, and now the baker was half-way across the road. “Fivepence,” said
  • Bealby and gave the little old woman sixpence. “Here,” she cried, “take
  • your penny!”
  • He did not wait. He darted out of the door.
  • The baker was all over the way of escape. He extended arms that seemed
  • abnormally long and with a weak cry Bealby found himself trapped.
  • Trapped, but not hopelessly. He knew how to do it. He had done it in
  • milder forms before, but now he did it with all his being. Under the
  • diaphragm of the baker smote Bealby’s hard little head, and instantly he
  • was away running up the quiet sunny street. Man when he assumed the
  • erect attitude made a hostage of his belly. It is a proverb among the
  • pastoral Berbers of the Atlas mountains that the man who extends his
  • arms in front of an angry ram is a fool.
  • It seemed probable to Bealby that he would get away up the street. The
  • baker was engaged in elaborately falling backward, making the most of
  • sitting down in the road, and the wind had been knocked out of him so
  • that he could not shout. He emitted “Stop him!” in large whispers. Away
  • ahead there were only three builder’s men sitting under the wall beyond
  • the White Hart, consuming tea out of their tea cans. But the boy who was
  • trimming the top of the tall privet hedge outside the doctor’s saw the
  • assault of the baker and incontinently uttered the shout that the baker
  • could not. Also he fell off his steps with great alacrity and started in
  • pursuit of Bealby. A young man from anywhere—perhaps the grocer’s
  • shop—also started for Bealby. But the workmen were slow to rise to the
  • occasion. Bealby could have got past them. And then, abruptly at the
  • foot of the street ahead the tramp came into view, a battered
  • disconcerting figure. His straw-coloured hat which had recently been
  • wetted and dried in the sun was a swaying mop. The sight of Bealby
  • seemed to rouse him from some disagreeable meditations. He grasped the
  • situation with a terrible quickness. Regardless of the wisdom of the
  • pastoral Berbers he extended his arms and stood prepared to intercept.
  • Bealby thought at the rate of a hundred thoughts to the minute. He
  • darted sideways and was up the ladder and among the beams and rafters of
  • the unfinished roof before the pursuit had more than begun. “Here, come
  • off that,” cried the foreman builder, only now joining in the hunt with
  • any sincerity. He came across the road while Bealby regarded him
  • wickedly from the rafters above. Then as the good man made to ascend
  • Bealby got him neatly on the hat, it was a bowler hat, with a tile. This
  • checked the advance. There was a disposition to draw a little off and
  • look up at Bealby. One of the younger builders from the opposite
  • sidewalk got him very neatly in the ribs with a stone. But two other
  • shots went wide and Bealby shifted to a more covered position behind the
  • chimney stack.
  • From here, however, he had a much less effective command of the ladder,
  • and he perceived that his tenure of the new house was not likely to be a
  • long one.
  • Below, men parleyed. “Who _is_ ’e?” asked the foreman builder. “Where’d
  • ’e come from?” “’E’s a brasted little thief,” said the tramp. “’E’s one
  • of the wust characters on the road.” The baker was recovering his voice
  • now. “There’s a reward out for ’im,” he said, “and ’e butted me in the
  • stummick.”
  • “’Ow much reward?” asked the foreman builder.
  • “Five pound for the man who catches him.”
  • “’Ere!” cried the foreman builder in an arresting voice to the tramp.
  • “Just stand away from that ladder....”
  • Whatever else Bealby might or might not be, one thing was very clear
  • about him and that was that he was a fugitive. And the instinct of
  • humanity is to pursue fugitives. Man is a hunting animal, enquiry into
  • the justice of a case is an altogether later accretion to his complex
  • nature, and that is why, whatever you are or whatever you do, you should
  • never let people get you on the run. There is a joy in the mere fact of
  • hunting, the sight of a scarlet coat and a hound will brighten a whole
  • village, and now Crayminster was rousing itself like a sleeper who wakes
  • to sunshine and gay music. People were looking out of windows and coming
  • out of shops, a policeman appeared and heard the baker’s simple story, a
  • brisk hatless young man in a white apron and with a pencil behind his
  • ear became prominent. Bealby, peeping over the ridge of the roof, looked
  • a thoroughly dirty and unpleasant little creature to all these people.
  • The only spark of human sympathy for him below was in the heart of the
  • little old woman in the cap who had given him his breakfast. She
  • surveyed the roof of the new house from the door of her shop, she hoped
  • Bealby wouldn’t hurt himself up there, and she held his penny change
  • clutched in her hand in her apron pocket with a vague idea that perhaps
  • presently if he ran past she could very quickly give it him.
  • § 2
  • Considerable delay in delivering the assault on the house was caused by
  • the foreman’s insistence that he alone should ascend the ladder to
  • capture Bealby. He was one of those regular-featured men with large
  • heads who seem to have inflexible backbones, he was large and fair and
  • full with a sweetish chest voice and in all his movements authoritative
  • and deliberate. Whenever he made to ascend he discovered that people
  • were straying into his building, and he had to stop and direct his men
  • how to order them off. Inside his large head he was trying to arrange
  • everybody to cut off Bealby’s line of retreat without risking that
  • anybody but himself should capture the fugitive. It was none too easy
  • and it knitted his brows. Meanwhile Bealby was able to reconnoitre the
  • adjacent properties and to conceive plans for a possible line of escape.
  • He also got a few tiles handy against when the rush up the ladder came.
  • At the same time two of the younger workmen were investigating the
  • possibility of getting at him from inside the house. There was still no
  • staircase, but there were ways of clambering. They had heard about the
  • reward and they knew that they must do this before the foreman realized
  • their purpose, and this a little retarded them. In their pockets they
  • had a number of stones, ammunition in reserve, if it came again to
  • throwing.
  • Bealby was no longer fatigued nor depressed; anxiety for the future was
  • lost in the excitement of the present, and his heart told him that, come
  • what might, getting on to the roof was an extraordinarily good dodge.
  • And if only he could bring off a certain jump he had in mind, there were
  • other dodges—....
  • In the village street an informal assembly of leading citizens, a little
  • recovered now from their first nervousness about flying tiles, discussed
  • the problem of Bealby. There was Mumby, the draper and vegetarian, with
  • the bass voice and the big black beard. He advocated the fire engine. He
  • was one of the volunteer fire brigade and never so happy as when he was
  • wearing his helmet. He had come out of his shop at the shouting. Schocks
  • the butcher, and his boy were also in the street. Schocks’s yard, with
  • its heap of manure and fodder, bounded the new house on the left. Rymell
  • the vet emerged from the billiard room of the White Hart, and with his
  • head a little on one side was watching Bealby and replying attentively
  • to the baker, who was asking him a number of questions that struck him
  • as irrelevant. All the White Hart people were in the street.
  • “I suppose, Mr. Rymell,” said the baker, “there’s a mort of dangerous
  • things in a man’s belly round about ’is Stummick?”
  • “Tiles,” said Mr. Rymell. “Loose bricks. It wouldn’t do if he started
  • dropping those.”
  • “I was saying, Mr. Rymell,” said the baker, after a pause for digestion,
  • “is a man likely to be injured badly by a Blaw in his stummick?”
  • Mr. Rymell stared at him for a moment with unresponsive eyes. “More
  • likely to get you in the head,” he said, and then, “Here! What’s that
  • fool of a carpenter going to do?”
  • The tramp was hovering on the outskirts of the group of besiegers,
  • vindictive but dispirited. He had been brought to from his fit and given
  • a shilling by the old gentleman, but he was dreadfully wet between his
  • shirt—he wore a shirt, under three waistcoats and a coat—and his skin,
  • because the old gentleman’s method of revival had been to syringe him
  • suddenly with cold water. It had made him weep with astonishment and
  • misery. Now he saw no advantage in claiming Bealby publicly. His part,
  • he felt, was rather a waiting one. What he had to say to Bealby could be
  • best said without the assistance of a third person. And he wanted to
  • understand more of this talk about a reward. If there was a reward out
  • for Bealby—
  • “That’s not a bad dodge!” said Rymell, changing his opinion of the
  • foreman suddenly as that individual began his ascent of the ladder with
  • a bricklayer’s hod carried shield-wise above his head. He went up with
  • difficulty and slowly because of the extreme care he took to keep his
  • head protected. But no tiles came. Bealby had discovered a more
  • dangerous attack developing inside the house and was already in retreat
  • down the other side of the building.
  • He did a leap that might have hurt him badly, taking off from the corner
  • of the house and jumping a good twelve feet on to a big heap of straw in
  • the butcher’s yard. He came down on all fours and felt a little jarred
  • for an instant, and then he was up again and had scrambled up by a heap
  • of manure to the top of the butcher’s wall. He was over that and into
  • Maccullum’s yard next door before anyone in the front of the new house
  • had realized that he was in flight. Then one of the two workmen who had
  • been coming up inside the house saw him from the oblong opening that was
  • some day to be the upstairs bedroom window, and gave tongue.
  • It was thirty seconds later, and after Bealby had vanished from the
  • butcher’s wall that the foreman, still clinging to his hod, appeared
  • over the ridge of the roof. At the workman’s shout the policeman, who
  • with the preventive disposition of his profession, had hitherto been
  • stopping anyone from coming into the unfinished house, turned about and
  • ran out into its brick and plaster and timber-littered backyard,
  • whereupon the crowd in the street realizing that the quarry had gone
  • away and no longer restrained, came pouring partly through the house and
  • partly round through the butcher’s gate into his yard.
  • Bealby had had a check.
  • He had relied upon the tarred felt roof of the mushroom shed of
  • Maccullum the tailor and breeches-maker to get him to the wall that gave
  • upon Mr. Benshaw’s strawberry fields and he had not seen from his roof
  • above the ramshackle glazed outhouse which Maccullum called his workroom
  • and in which four industrious tailors were working in an easy
  • dishabille. The roof of the shed was the merest tarred touchwood, it had
  • perished as felt long ago, it collapsed under Bealby, he went down into
  • a confusion of mushrooms and mushroom-bed, he blundered out trailing
  • mushrooms and spawn and rich matter, he had a nine-foot wall to
  • negotiate and only escaped by a hair’s-breadth from the clutch of a
  • little red-slippered man who came dashing out from the workroom. But by
  • a happy use of the top of the dustbin he did just get away over the wall
  • in time, and the red-slippered tailor, who was not good at walls, was
  • left struggling to imitate an ascent that had looked easy enough until
  • he came to try it.
  • For a moment the little tailor struggled alone and then both Maccullum’s
  • little domain and the butcher’s yard next door and the little patch of
  • space behind the new house, were violently injected with a crowd of
  • active people, all confusedly on the Bealby trail. Someone, he never
  • knew who, gave the little tailor a leg-up and then his red slippers
  • twinkled over the wall and he was leading the hunt into the market
  • gardens of Mr. Benshaw. A collarless colleague in list slippers and
  • conspicuous braces followed. The policeman, after he had completed the
  • wreck of Mr. Maccullum’s mushroom shed, came next, and then Mr.
  • Maccullum, with no sense of times and seasons, anxious to have a
  • discussion at once upon the question of this damage. Mr. Maccullum was
  • out of breath and he never got further with this projected conversation
  • than “Here!” This he repeated several times as opportunity seemed to
  • offer. The remaining tailors got to the top of the wall more sedately
  • with the help of the Maccullum kitchen steps and dropped; Mr. Schocks
  • followed, breathing hard, and then a fresh jet of humanity came
  • squirting into the gardens through a gap in the fence at the back of the
  • building site. This was led by the young workman who had first seen
  • Bealby go away. Hard behind him came Rymell, the vet, the grocer’s
  • assistant, the doctor’s page-boy and, less briskly, the baker. Then the
  • tramp. Then Mumby and Schocks’s boy. Then a number of other people. The
  • seeking of Bealby had assumed the dimensions of a Hue and Cry.
  • The foreman with the large head and the upright back was still on the
  • new roof; he was greatly distressed at the turn things had taken and
  • shouted his claims to a major share in the capture of Bealby, mixed with
  • his opinions of Bealby and a good deal of mere swearing, to a sunny but
  • unsympathetic sky....
  • § 3
  • Mr. Benshaw was a small holder, a sturdy English yeoman of the new
  • school. He was an Anti-Socialist, a self-helper, an independent-spirited
  • man. He had a steadily growing banking account and a plain but sterile
  • wife, and he was dark in complexion and so erect in his bearing as to
  • seem a little to lean forward. Usually he wore a sort of grey
  • gamekeeper’s suit with brown gaiters (except on Sundays when the coat
  • was black), he was addicted to bowler hats that accorded ill with his
  • large grave grey-coloured face, and he was altogether a very sound
  • strong man. His bowler hats did but accentuate that. He had no time for
  • vanities, even the vanity of dressing consistently. He went into the
  • nearest shop and just bought the cheapest hat he could, and so he got
  • hats designed for the youthful and giddy, hats with flighty crowns and
  • flippant bows and amorous brims that undulated attractively to set off
  • flushed and foolish young faces. It made his unrelenting face look
  • rather like the Puritans under the Stuart monarchy.
  • He was a horticulturist rather than a farmer. He had begun his career in
  • cheap lodgings with a field of early potatoes and cabbages, supplemented
  • by employment, but with increased prosperity his area of cultivation had
  • extended and his methods intensified. He now grew considerable
  • quantities of strawberries, raspberries, celery, seakale, asparagus,
  • early peas, late peas, and onions, and consumed more stable manure than
  • any other cultivator within ten miles of Crayminster. He was beginning
  • to send cut flowers to London. He had half an acre of glass and he was
  • rapidly extending it. He had built himself a cottage on lines of austere
  • economy, and a bony-looking dwelling house for some of his men. He also
  • owned a number of useful sheds of which tar and corrugated iron were
  • conspicuous features. His home was furnished with the utmost
  • respectability, and notably joyless even in a countryside where gaiety
  • is regarded as an impossible quality in furniture. He was already in a
  • small local way a mortgagee. Good fortune had not turned the head of Mr.
  • Benshaw nor robbed him of the feeling that he was a particularly
  • deserving person, entitled to a preferential treatment from a country
  • which in his plain unsparing way he felt that he enriched.
  • In many ways he thought that the country was careless of his needs. And
  • in none more careless than in the laws relating to trespass. Across his
  • dominions ran three footpaths, and one of these led to the public
  • elementary school. That he should have to maintain this latter—and if he
  • did not keep it in good order the children spread out and made parallel
  • tracks among his cultivations—seemed to him a thing almost intolerably
  • unjust. He mended it with cinders, acetylene refuse, which he believed
  • and hoped to be thoroughly bad for boots, and a peculiarly slimy chalky
  • clay, and he put on a board at each end “Keep to the footpaths,
  • Trespassers will be prosecuted, by Order,” which he painted himself to
  • save expense when he was confined indoors by the influenza. Still more
  • unjust it would be, he felt, for him to spend money upon effective
  • fencing, and he could find no fencing cheap enough and ugly enough and
  • painful enough and impossible enough to express his feelings in the
  • matter. Every day the children streamed to and fro, marking how his
  • fruits ripened and his produce became more esculent. And other people
  • pursued these tracks; many, Mr. Benshaw was convinced, went to and fro
  • through his orderly crops who had no business whatever, no honest
  • business, to pass that way. Either, he concluded, they did it to annoy
  • him, or they did it to injure him. This continual invasion aroused in
  • Mr. Benshaw all that stern anger against unrighteousness latent in our
  • race which more than any other single force has made America and the
  • Empire what they are to-day. Once already he had been robbed—a raid upon
  • his raspberries—and he felt convinced that at any time he might be
  • robbed again. He had made representations to the local authority to get
  • the footpath closed, but in vain. They defended themselves with the
  • paltry excuse that the children would then have to go nearly a mile
  • round to the school.
  • It was not only the tyranny of these footpaths that offended Mr.
  • Benshaw’s highly developed sense of Individual Liberty. All round his
  • rather straggling dominions his neighbours displayed an ungenerous
  • indisposition to maintain their fences to his satisfaction. In one or
  • two places, in abandonment of his clear rights in the matter, he had, at
  • his own expense, supplemented these lax defences with light barbed wire
  • defences. But it was not a very satisfactory sort of barbed wire. He
  • wanted barbed wire with extra spurs like a fighting cock; he wanted
  • barbed wire that would start out after nightfall and attack passers-by.
  • This boundary trouble was universal; in a way it was worse than the
  • footpaths which after all only affected the Cage Fields where his
  • strawberries grew. Except for the yard and garden walls of Maccullum and
  • Schocks and that side, there was not really a satisfactory foot of
  • enclosure all round Mr. Benshaw. On the one side rats and people’s dogs
  • and scratching cats came in, on the other side rabbits. The rabbits were
  • intolerable and recently there had been a rise of nearly thirty per cent
  • in the price of wire netting.
  • Mr. Benshaw wanted to hurt rabbits; he did not want simply to kill them,
  • he wanted so to kill them as to put the fear of death into the burrows.
  • He wanted to kill them so that scared little furry survivors with their
  • tails as white as ghosts would go lolloping home and say, “I say, you
  • chaps, we’d better shift out of this. We’re up against a Strong
  • Determined Man....”
  • I have made this lengthy statement of Mr. Benshaw’s economic and moral
  • difficulties in order that the reader should understand the peculiar
  • tension that already existed upon this side of Crayminster. It has been
  • necessary to do so now because in a few seconds there will be no further
  • opportunity for such preparations.
  • There had been trouble, I may add very hastily, about the shooting of
  • Mr. Benshaw’s gun; a shower of small shot had fallen out of the twilight
  • upon the umbrella and basket of old Mrs. Frobisher. And only a week ago
  • an unsympathetic bench after a hearing of over an hour and in the face
  • of overwhelming evidence had refused to convict little Lucy Mumby, aged
  • eleven, of stealing fruit from Mr. Benshaw’s fields. She had been caught
  • red-handed....
  • At the very moment that Bealby was butting the baker in the stomach, Mr.
  • Benshaw was just emerging from his austere cottage after a wholesome but
  • inexpensive high tea in which he had finished up two left-over cold
  • sausages, and he was considering very deeply the financial side of a
  • furious black fence that he had at last decided should pen in the school
  • children from further depredations. It should be of splintery tarred
  • deal, and high, with well-pointed tops studded with sharp nails, and he
  • believed that by making the path only two feet wide, a real saving of
  • ground for cultivation might be made and a very considerable discomfort
  • for the public arranged, to compensate for his initial expense. The
  • thought of a narrow lane which would in winter be characterized by an
  • excessive slimness and from which there would be no lateral escape was
  • pleasing to a mind by no means absolutely restricted to considerations
  • of pounds, shillings and pence. In his hand after his custom he carried
  • a hoe, on the handle of which feet were marked, so that it was available
  • not only for destroying the casual weed but also for purposes of
  • measurement. With this he now checked his estimate and found that here
  • he would reclaim as much as three feet of trodden waste, here a full
  • two.
  • Absorbed in these calculations, he heeded little the growth of a certain
  • clamour from the backs of the houses bordering on the High Street. It
  • did not appear to concern him and Mr. Benshaw made it almost
  • ostentatiously his rule to mind his own business. His eyes remained
  • fixed on the lumpy, dusty, sunbaked track, that with an intelligent
  • foresight he saw already transformed into a deterrent slough of despond
  • for the young....
  • Then quite suddenly the shouting took on a new note. He glanced over his
  • shoulder almost involuntarily and discovered that after all this uproar
  • was his business. Amazingly his business. His mouth assumed a
  • Cromwellian fierceness. His grip tightened on his hoe. That anyone
  • should dare! But it was impossible!
  • His dominions were being invaded with a peculiar boldness and violence.
  • Ahead of everyone else and running with wild wavings of the arms across
  • his strawberries was a small and very dirty little boy. He impressed Mr.
  • Benshaw merely as a pioneer. Some thirty yards behind him was a little
  • collarless, short-sleeved man in red slippers running with great
  • effrontery and behind him another still more denuded lunatic, also in
  • list slippers and with braces—braces of inconceivable levity. And then
  • Wiggs, the policeman, hotly followed by Mr. Maccullum. Then more
  • distraught tailors and Schocks the butcher. But a louder shout heralded
  • the main attack, and Mr. Benshaw turned his eyes—already they were
  • slightly blood-shot eyes—to the right, and saw, pouring through the
  • broken hedge, a disorderly crowd, Rymell whom he had counted his friend,
  • the grocer’s assistant, the doctor’s boy, some strangers—Mumby!
  • At the sight of Mumby, Mr. Benshaw leapt at a conclusion. He saw it all.
  • The whole place was rising against him; they were asserting some
  • infernal new right-of-way. Mumby—Mumby had got them to do it. All the
  • fruits of fifteen years of toil, all the care and accumulation of Mr.
  • Benshaw’s prime, were to be trampled and torn to please a draper’s
  • spite!...
  • Sturdy yeoman as Mr. Benshaw was he resolved instantly to fight for his
  • liberties. One moment he paused to blow the powerful police whistle he
  • carried in his pocket and then rushed forward in the direction of the
  • hated Mumby, the leader of trespassers, the parent and abetter and
  • defender of the criminal Lucy. He took the hurrying panting man almost
  • unawares, and with one wild sweep of the hoe felled him to the earth.
  • Then he staggered about and smote again, but not quite in time to get
  • the head of Mr. Rymell.
  • This whistle he carried was part of a systematic campaign he had
  • developed against trespassers and fruit stealers. He and each of his
  • assistants carried one, and at the first shrill note—it was his
  • rule—everyone seized on every weapon that was handy and ran to pursue
  • and capture. All his assistants were extraordinarily prompt in
  • responding to these alarms, which were often the only break in long days
  • of strenuous and strenuously directed toil. So now with an astonishing
  • promptitude and animated faces men appeared from sheds and greenhouses
  • and distant patches of culture, hastening to the assistance of their
  • dour employer.
  • It says much for the amiable relations that existed between employers
  • and employed in those days before Syndicalism became the creed of the
  • younger workers that they did hurry to his assistance.
  • But many rapid things were to happen before they came into action. For
  • first a strange excitement seized upon the tramp. A fantastic delusive
  • sense of social rehabilitation took possession of his soul. Here he was
  • pitted against a formidable hoe-wielding man, who for some inscrutable
  • reason was resolved to cover the retreat of Bealby. And all the world,
  • it seemed, was with the tramp and against this hoe-wielder. All the
  • tremendous forces of human society, against which the tramp had
  • struggled for so many years, whose power he knew and feared as only the
  • outlaw can, had suddenly come into line with him. Across the
  • strawberries to the right there was even a policeman hastening to join
  • the majority, a policeman closely followed by a tradesman of the
  • blackest, most respectable quality. The tramp had a vision of himself as
  • a respectable man heroically leading respectable people against
  • outcasts. He dashed the lank hair from his eyes, waved his arms
  • laterally, and then with a loud strange cry flung himself towards Mr.
  • Benshaw. Two pairs of superimposed coat-tails flapped behind him. And
  • then the hoe whistled through the air and the tramp fell to the ground
  • like a sack.
  • But now Schocks’s boy had grasped his opportunity. He had been working
  • discreetly round behind Mr. Benshaw, and as the hoe smote he leapt upon
  • that hero’s back and seized him about the neck with both arms and bore
  • him staggering to the ground, and Rymell, equally quick, and used to the
  • tackling of formidable creatures, had snatched and twisted away the hoe
  • and grappled Mr. Benshaw almost before he was down. The first of Mr.
  • Benshaw’s helpers to reach the fray found the issue decided, his master
  • held down conclusively and a growing circle trampling down a wide area
  • of strawberry plants about the panting group....
  • Mr. Mumby, more frightened than hurt, was already sitting up, but the
  • tramp with a glowing wound upon his cheekbone and an expression of
  • astonishment in his face, lay low and pawed the earth.
  • “What d’you mean,” gasped Mr. Rymell, “hitting people about with that
  • hoe?”
  • “What d’you mean,” groaned Mr. Benshaw, “running across my
  • strawberries?”
  • “We were going after that boy.”
  • “Pounds and pounds’ worth of damage. Mischief and wickedness.... Mumby!”
  • Mr. Rymell, suddenly realizing the true values of the situation,
  • released Mr. Benshaw’s hands and knelt up. “Look here, Mr. Benshaw,” he
  • said, “you seem to be under the impression we are trespassing.”
  • Mr. Benshaw, struggling into a sitting position was understood to
  • enquire with some heat what Mr. Rymell called it. Schocks’s boy picked
  • up the hat with the erotic brim and handed it to the horticulturist
  • silently and respectfully.
  • “We were not trespassing,” said Mr. Rymell. “We were following up that
  • boy. _He_ was trespassing, if you like.... By the bye,—where _is_ the
  • boy? Has anyone caught him?”
  • At the question, attention which had been focussed upon Mr. Benshaw and
  • his hoe, came round. Across the field in the direction of the sunlit
  • half acre of glass the little tailor was visible standing gingerly and
  • picking up his red slippers for the third time—they would come off in
  • that loose good soil, everybody else had left the trail to concentrate
  • on Mr. Benshaw—and Bealby—. Bealby was out of sight. He had escaped,
  • clean got away.
  • “What boy?” asked Mr. Benshaw.
  • “Ferocious little beast who’s fought us like a rat. Been committing all
  • sorts of crimes about the country. Five pounds reward for him.”
  • “Fruit stealing?” asked Mr. Benshaw.
  • “Yes,” said Mr. Rymell, chancing it.
  • Mr. Benshaw reflected slowly. His eyes surveyed his trampled crops.
  • “Gooo _Lord_!” he cried. “Look at those strawberries!” His voice
  • gathered violence. “And that lout there!” he said. “Why!—he’s lying on
  • them! That’s the brute who went for me!”
  • “You got him a pretty tidy one side the head!” said Maccullum.
  • The tramp rolled over on some fresh strawberries and groaned pitifully.
  • “He’s hurt,” said Mr. Mumby.
  • The tramp flopped and lay still.
  • “Get some water!” said Rymell, standing up.
  • At the word water, the tramp started convulsively, rolled over and sat
  • up with a dazed expression.
  • “No water,” he said weakly. “No more water,” and then catching Mr.
  • Benshaw’s eye he got rather quickly to his feet.
  • Everybody who wasn’t already standing was getting up, and everyone now
  • was rather carefully getting himself off any strawberry plant he had
  • chanced to find himself smashing in the excitement of the occasion.
  • “That’s the man that started in on me,” said Mr. Benshaw. “What’s he
  • doing here? Who is he?”
  • “Who are _you_, my man? What business have you to be careering over this
  • field?” asked Mr. Rymell.
  • “I was only ’elping,” said the tramp.
  • “Nice help,” said Mr. Benshaw.
  • “I thought that boy was a thief or something.”
  • “And so you made a rush at me.”
  • “I didn’t exactly—sir—I thought you was ’elping ’im.”
  • “You be off, anyhow,” said Mr. Benshaw. “Whatever you thought.”
  • “Yes, you be off!” said Mr. Rymell.
  • “That’s the way, my man,” said Mr. Benshaw. “We haven’t any jobs for
  • you. The sooner we have you out of it the better for everyone. Get right
  • on to the path and keep it.” And with a desolating sense of exclusion
  • the tramp withdrew. “There’s pounds and pounds’ worth of damage here,”
  • said Mr. Benshaw. “This job’ll cost me a pretty penny. Look at them
  • berries there. Why, they ain’t fit for jam! And all done by one
  • confounded boy.” An evil light came into Mr. Benshaw’s eyes. “You leave
  • him to me and my chaps. If he’s gone up among those sheds there—we’ll
  • settle with him. Anyhow there’s no reason why my fruit should be
  • trampled worse than it has been. Fruit stealer, you say, he is?”
  • “They live on the country this time of year,” said Mr. Mumby.
  • “And catch them doing a day’s work picking!” said Mr. Benshaw. “I know
  • the sort.”
  • “There’s a reward of five pounds for ’im already,” said the baker....
  • § 4
  • You perceive how humanitarian motives may sometimes defeat their own
  • end, and how little Lady Laxton’s well-intentioned handbills were
  • serving to rescue Bealby. Instead, they were turning him into a scared
  • and hunted animal. In spite of its manifest impossibility he was
  • convinced that the reward and this pursuit had to do with his burglary
  • of the poultry farm, and that his capture would be but the preliminary
  • to prison, trial and sentence. His one remaining idea was to get away.
  • But his escape across the market gardens had left him so blown and
  • spent, that he was obliged to hide up for a time in this perilous
  • neighbourhood, before going on. He saw a disused-looking shed in the
  • lowest corner of the gardens behind the greenhouses, and by doubling
  • sharply along a hedge he got to it unseen. It was not disused—nothing in
  • Mr. Benshaw’s possession ever was absolutely disused, but it was filled
  • with horticultural lumber, with old calcium carbide tins, with broken
  • wheelbarrows and damaged ladders awaiting repair, with some ragged
  • wheeling planks and surplus rolls of roofing felt. At the back were some
  • unhinged shed doors leaning against the wall, and between them Bealby
  • tucked himself neatly and became still, glad of any respite from the
  • chase.
  • He would wait for twilight and then get away across the meadows at the
  • back and then go—He didn’t know whither. And now he had no confidence in
  • the wild world any more. A qualm of home-sickness for the compact little
  • gardener’s cottage at Shonts, came to Bealby. Why, as a matter of fact,
  • wasn’t he there now?
  • He ought to have tried more at Shonts.
  • He ought to have minded what they told him and not have taken up a
  • toasting fork against Thomas. Then he wouldn’t now have been a hunted
  • burglar with a reward of five pounds on his head and nothing in his
  • pocket but threepence and a pack of greasy playing cards, a box of
  • sulphur matches and various objectionable sundries, none of which were
  • properly his own.
  • If only he could have his time over again!
  • Such wholesome reflections occupied his thoughts until the onset of the
  • dusk stirred him to departure. He crept out of his hiding-place and
  • stretched his limbs which had got very stiff, and was on the point of
  • reconnoitring from the door of the shed when he became aware of stealthy
  • footsteps outside.
  • With the quickness of an animal he shot back into his hiding-place. The
  • footsteps had halted. For a long time it seemed the unseen waited,
  • listening. Had he heard Bealby?
  • Then someone fumbled with the door of the shed; it opened, and there was
  • a long pause of cautious inspection.
  • Then the unknown had shuffled into the shed and sat down on a heap of
  • matting.
  • “_Gaw!_” said a voice.
  • The tramp’s!
  • “If ever I struck a left-handed Mascot it was that boy,” said the tramp.
  • “The little _swine_!”
  • For the better part of two minutes he went on from this mild beginning
  • to a descriptive elaboration of Bealby. For the first time in his life
  • Bealby learnt how unfavourable was the impression he might leave on a
  • fellow creature’s mind.
  • “Took even my matches!” cried the tramp, and tried this statement over
  • with variations.
  • “First that old fool with his syringe!” The tramp’s voice rose in angry
  • protest. “Here’s a chap dying epilepsy on your doorstep and all you can
  • do is to squirt cold water at him! Cold water! Why you might _kill_ a
  • man doing that! And then say you’d thought’d bring ’im ränd! Bring ’im
  • ränd! You be jolly glad I didn’t stash your silly face in. You
  • [misbegotten] old fool! What’s a shilling for wetting a man to ’is skin.
  • Wet through I was. Running inside my shirt,—dripping.... And then the
  • blooming boy clears!
  • “_I_ don’t know what boys are coming to!” cried the tramp. “These board
  • schools it is. Gets ’old of everything ’e can and bunks! Gaw! if I get
  • my ’ands on ’im, I’ll show ’im. I’ll—”
  • For some time the tramp revelled in the details, for the most part
  • crudely surgical, of his vengeance upon Bealby....
  • “Then there’s that dog bite. ’Ow do I know ’ow that’s going to turn ät?
  • If I get ’idrophobia, blowed if I don’t _bite_ some of ’em. ’Idrophobia.
  • Screaming and foaming. Nice death for a man—my time o’ life! Bark I
  • shall. Bark and bite.
  • “And this is your world,” said the tramp. “This is the world you put
  • people into and expect ’em to be ’appy....
  • “I’d like to bite that dough-faced fool with the silly ’at. I’d enjoy
  • biting _’im_. I’d spit it out but I’d bite it right enough. Wiping abät
  • with ’is _’O. Gaw!_ Get off my ground! Be orf with you. Slash. ’E ought
  • to be shut up.
  • “Where’s the justice of it?” shouted the tramp. “Where’s the right and
  • the sense of it? What ’ave _I_ done that I should always get the under
  • side? Why should _I_ be stuck on the under side of everything? There’s
  • worse men than me in all sorts of positions.... Judges there are.
  • ’Orrible Kerecters. Ministers and people. I’ve read abät ’em in the
  • papers....
  • “It’s we tramps are the scapegoats. Somebody’s got to suffer so as the
  • police can show a face. Gaw! Some of these days I’ll do something. I’ll
  • do something. You’ll drive me too far with it, I tell you—”
  • He stopped suddenly and listened. Bealby had creaked.
  • “Gaw! What can one do?” said the tramp after a long interval.
  • And then complaining more gently, the tramp began to feel about to make
  • his simple preparations for the night.
  • “’Unt me out of this, I expect,” said the tramp. “And many sleeping in
  • feather beds that ain’t fit to ’old a candle to me. Not a hordinary
  • farthing candle....”
  • § 5
  • The subsequent hour or so was an interval of tedious tension for Bealby.
  • After vast spaces of time he was suddenly aware of three vertical
  • threads of light. He stared at them with mysterious awe, until he
  • realized that they were just the moonshine streaming through the cracks
  • of the shed.
  • The tramp tossed and muttered in his sleep.
  • Footsteps?
  • Yes—Footsteps.
  • Then voices.
  • They were coming along by the edge of the field, and coming and talking
  • very discreetly.
  • “Ugh!” said the tramp, and then softly, “what’s that?” Then he too
  • became noiselessly attentive.
  • Bealby could hear his own heart beating.
  • The men were now close outside the shed. “He wouldn’t go in there,” said
  • Mr. Benshaw’s voice. “He wouldn’t dare. Anyhow we’ll go up by the glass
  • first. I’ll let him have the whole barrelful of oats if I get a glimpse
  • of him. If he’d gone away they’d have caught him in the road....”
  • The footsteps receded. There came a cautious rustling on the part of the
  • tramp and then his feet padded softly to the door of the shed. He
  • struggled to open it and then with a jerk got it open a few inches; a
  • great bar of moonlight leapt and lay still across the floor of the shed.
  • Bealby advanced his head cautiously until he could see the black obscure
  • indications of the tramp’s back as he peeped out.
  • “_Now_,” whispered the tramp and opened the door wider. Then he ducked
  • his head down and darted out of sight, leaving the door open behind him.
  • Bealby questioned whether he should follow. He came out a few steps and
  • then went back at a shout from away up the garden. “There he goes,”
  • shouted a voice, “in the shadow of the hedge.”
  • “Look out, Jim!”—_Bang_—and a yelp.
  • “Stand away! I’ve got another barrel!”
  • _Bang._
  • Then silence for a time, and then the footsteps coming back.
  • “That ought to teach him,” said Mr. Benshaw. “First time, I got him
  • fair, and I think I peppered him a bit the second. Couldn’t see very
  • well, but I heard him yell. He won’t forget that in a hurry. Not him.
  • There’s nothing like oats for fruit stealers. Jim, just shut that door,
  • will you? That’s where he was hiding....”
  • It seemed a vast time to Bealby before he ventured out into the summer
  • moonlight, and a very pitiful and outcast little Bealby he felt himself
  • to be.
  • He was beginning to realize what it means to go beyond the narrow
  • securities of human society. He had no friends, no friends at all....
  • He caught at and arrested a sob of self-pity.
  • Perhaps after all it was not so late as Bealby had supposed. There were
  • still lights in some of the houses and he had the privilege of seeing
  • Mr. Benshaw going to bed with pensive deliberation. Mr. Benshaw wore a
  • flannel night-shirt and said quite a lengthy prayer before extinguishing
  • his candle. Then suddenly Bealby turned nervously and made off through
  • the hedge. A dog had barked.
  • At first there were nearly a dozen lighted windows in Crayminster. They
  • went out one by one. He hung for a long time with a passionate
  • earnestness on the sole surviving one, but that too went at last. He
  • could have wept when at last it winked out. He came down into the marshy
  • flats by the river, but he did not like the way in which the water
  • sucked and swirled in the vague moonlight; also he suddenly discovered a
  • great white horse standing quite still in the misty grass not thirty
  • yards away; so he went up to and crossed the high road and wandered up
  • the hillside towards the allotments, which attracted him by reason of
  • the sociability of the numerous tool sheds. In a hedge near at hand a
  • young rabbit squealed sharply and was stilled. Why?
  • Then something like a short snake scrabbled by very fast through the
  • grass.
  • Then he thought he saw the tramp stalking him noiselessly behind some
  • currant bushes. That went on for some time, but came to nothing.
  • Then nothing pursued him, nothing at all. The gap, the void, came after
  • him. The bodiless, the faceless, the formless; these are evil hunters in
  • the night....
  • What a cold still _watching_ thing moonlight can be!...
  • He thought he would like to get his back against something solid, and
  • found near one of the sheds a little heap of litter. He sat down against
  • good tarred boards, assured at least that whatever came must come in
  • front. Whatever he did, he was resolved, he would not shut his eyes.
  • That would be fatal....
  • He awoke in broad daylight amidst a cheerful uproar of birds.
  • § 6
  • And then again flight and pursuit were resumed.
  • As Bealby went up the hill away from Crayminster he saw a man standing
  • over a spade and watching his retreat and when he looked back again
  • presently this man was following. It was Lady Laxton’s five pound reward
  • had done the thing for him.
  • He was half minded to surrender and have done with it, but jail he knew
  • was a dreadful thing of stone and darkness. He would make one last
  • effort. So he beat along the edge of a plantation and then crossed it
  • and forced his way through some gorse and came upon a sunken road, that
  • crossed the hill in a gorse-lined cutting. He struggled down the steep
  • bank. At its foot, regardless of him, unaware of him, a man sat beside a
  • motor bicycle with his fists gripped tight and his head downcast,
  • swearing. A county map was crumpled in his hand. “Damn!” he cried, and
  • flung the map to the ground and kicked it and put his foot on it.
  • Bealby slipped, came down the bank with a run and found himself in the
  • road within a couple of yards of the blond features and angry eyes of
  • Captain Douglas. When he saw the Captain and perceived himself
  • recognized, he flopped down—a done and finished Bealby....
  • § 7
  • He had arrived just in time to interrupt the Captain in a wild and
  • reprehensible fit of passion.
  • The Captain imagined it was a secret fit of passion. He thought he was
  • quite alone and that no one could hear him or see him. So he had let
  • himself shout and stamp, to work off the nervous tensions that tormented
  • him beyond endurance.
  • In the direst sense of the words the Captain was in love with Madeleine.
  • He was in love quite beyond the bounds set by refined and decorous
  • people to this dangerous passion. The primordial savage that lurks in so
  • many of us was uppermost in him. He was not in love with her prettily or
  • delicately, he was in love with her violently and vehemently. He wanted
  • to be with her, he wanted to be close to her, he wanted to possess her
  • and nobody else to approach her. He was so inflamed now that no other
  • interest in life had any importance except as it aided or interfered
  • with this desire. He had forced himself in spite of this fever in his
  • blood to leave her to pursue Bealby, and now he was regretting this
  • firmness furiously. He had expected to catch Bealby overnight and bring
  • him back to the hotel in triumph. But Bealby had been elusive. There she
  • was, away there, hurt and indignant—neglected!
  • “A laggard in love,” cried the Captain, “a dastard in war! God!—I run
  • away from everything. First I leave the manœuvres, then her. Unstable as
  • water thou shalt not prevail. Water! What does the confounded boy
  • matter? What does he matter?
  • “And there she is. Alone! She’ll flirt—naturally she’ll flirt. Don’t I
  • deserve it? Haven’t I asked for it? Just the one little time we might
  • have had together! I fling it in her face. You fool, you laggard, you
  • dastard! And here’s this map!”
  • A breathing moment.
  • “How the _devil_,” cried the Captain, “am I to find the little beast on
  • this map?
  • “And twice he’s been within reach of my hand!
  • “No decision!” cried the Captain. “No instant grip! What good is a
  • soldier without it? What good is any man who will not leap at
  • opportunity? I ought to have chased out last night after that fool and
  • his oats. Then I might have had a chance!
  • “Chuck it! Chuck the whole thing! Go back to her. Kneel to her, kiss
  • her, compel her!
  • “And what sort of reception am I likely to get?”
  • He crumpled the flapping map in his fist.
  • And then suddenly out of nowhere Bealby came rolling down to his feet, a
  • dishevelled and earthy Bealby. But Bealby.
  • “Good Lord!” cried the Captain, starting to his feet and holding the map
  • like a sword sheath.
  • “What do you want?”
  • For a second Bealby was a silent spectacle of misery.
  • “Oooh! I want my _breckfuss_,” he burst out at last, reduced to tears.
  • “Are you young Bealby?” asked the Captain, seizing him by the shoulder.
  • “They’re after me,” cried Bealby. “If they catch me they’ll put me in
  • prison. Where they don’t give you anything. It wasn’t me did it—and I
  • ’aven’t had anything to eat—not since yesterday.”
  • The Captain came rapidly to a decision. There should be no more
  • faltering. He saw his way clear before him. He would act—like a
  • whistling sword. “Here! jump up behind,” he said ... “hold on tight to
  • me....”
  • § 8
  • For a time there was a more than Napoleonic swiftness in the Captain’s
  • movements. When Bealby’s pursuer came up to the hedge that looks down
  • into the sunken road, there was no Bealby, no Captain, nothing but a
  • torn and dishevelled county map, an almost imperceptible odour of petrol
  • and a faint sound—like a distant mowing machine—and the motor bicycle
  • was a mile away on the road to Beckinstone. Eight miles, eight rather
  • sickening miles, Bealby did to Beckinstone in eleven minutes, and there
  • in a little coffee house he was given breakfast with eggs and bacon and
  • marmalade (Prime!), and his spirit was restored to him while the Captain
  • raided a bicycle and repairing shop and negotiated the hire of an
  • experienced but fairly comfortable wickerwork trailer. And so, to London
  • through the morning sunshine, leaving tramps, pursuers, policemen,
  • handbills, bakers, market gardeners, terrors of the darkness and
  • everything upon the road behind—and further behind and remote and
  • insignificant—and so to the vanishing point.
  • Some few words of explanation the Captain had vouchsafed, and that was
  • all.
  • “Don’t be afraid about it,” he said. “Don’t be in the least bit afraid.
  • You tell them about it, just simply and truthfully, exactly what you
  • did, exactly how you got into it and out of it and all about it.”
  • “You’re going to take me up to a Magistrate, sir?”
  • “I’m going to take you up to the Lord Chancellor himself.”
  • “And then they won’t do anything?”
  • “Nothing at all, Bealby; you trust me. All you’ve got to do is to tell
  • the simple truth....”
  • It was pretty rough going in the trailer, but very exciting. If you
  • gripped the sides very hard, and sat quite tight, nothing very much
  • happened and also there was a strap across your chest. And you went past
  • everything. There wasn’t a thing on the road the Captain didn’t pass,
  • lowing deeply with his great horn when they seemed likely to block his
  • passage. And as for the burglary and everything, it would all be
  • settled....
  • The Captain also found that ride to London exhilarating. At least he was
  • no longer hanging about; he was getting to something. He would be able
  • to go back to her—and all his being now yearned to go back to her—with
  • things achieved, with successes to show. He’d found the boy. He would go
  • straight to dear old uncle Chickney, and uncle Chickney would put things
  • right with Moggeridge, the boy would bear his testimony, Moggeridge
  • would be convinced and all would be well again. He might be back with
  • Madeleine that evening. He would go back to her, and she would see the
  • wisdom and energy of all he had done, and she would lift that dear chin
  • of hers and smile that dear smile of hers and hold out her hand to be
  • kissed and the lights and reflections would play on that strong soft
  • neck of hers....
  • They buzzed along stretches of common and stretches of straight-edged
  • meadowland, by woods and orchards, by pleasant inns and slumbering
  • villages and the gates and lodges of country houses.
  • These latter grew more numerous, and presently they skirted a town, and
  • then more road, more villages and at last signs of a nearness to London,
  • more frequent houses, more frequent inns, hoardings and advertisements,
  • an asphalted sidewalk, lamps, a gasworks, laundries, a stretch of
  • suburban villadom, a suburban railway station, a suburbanized old town,
  • an omnibus, the head of a tramline, a stretch of public common thick
  • with noticeboards, a broad pavement, something-or-other parade, with a
  • row of shops....
  • London.
  • CHAPTER VIII
  • HOW BEALBY EXPLAINED
  • § 1
  • Lord Chickney was only slightly older than Lord Moggeridge, but he had
  • not worn nearly so well. His hearing was not good, though he would never
  • admit it, and the loss of several teeth greatly affected his
  • articulation. One might generalize and say that neither physically nor
  • mentally do soldiers wear so well as lawyers. The army ages men sooner
  • than the law and philosophy; it exposes them more freely to germs, which
  • undermine and destroy, and it shelters them more completely from
  • thought, which stimulates and preserves. A lawyer must keep his law
  • highly polished and up-to-date or he hears of it within a fortnight, a
  • general never realizes he is out of training and behind the times until
  • disaster is accomplished. Since the magnificent retreat from
  • Bondy-Satina in eighty-seven and his five weeks defence of Barrowgast
  • (with the subsequent operations) the abilities of Lord Chickney had
  • never been exercised seriously at all. But there was a certain
  • simplicity of manner and a tall drooping grizzled old-veteran
  • picturesqueness about him that kept him distinguished; he was easy to
  • recognize on public occasions on account of his long moustaches, and so
  • he got pointed out when greater men were ignored. The autograph
  • collectors adored him. Every morning he would spend half an hour writing
  • autographs, and the habit was so strong in him that on Sundays, when
  • there was no London post and autograph writing would have been wrong
  • anyhow, he filled the time in copying out the epistle and gospel for the
  • day. And he liked to be well in the foreground of public affairs—if
  • possible wearing his decorations. After the autographs he would work,
  • sometimes for hours, for various patriotic societies and more
  • particularly for those which would impose compulsory training upon every
  • man, woman and child in the country. He even belonged to a society for
  • drilling the butchers’ ponies and training big dogs as scouts. He did
  • not understand how a country could be happy unless every city was
  • fortified and every citizen wore side-arms, and the slightest error in
  • his dietary led to the most hideous nightmares of the Channel Tunnel or
  • reduced estimates and a land enslaved. He wrote and toiled for these
  • societies, but he could not speak for them on account of his teeth. For
  • he had one peculiar weakness; he had faced death in many forms but he
  • had never faced a dentist. The thought of dentists gave him just the
  • same sick horror as the thought of invasion.
  • He was a man of blameless private life, a widower and childless. In
  • later years he had come to believe that he had once been very deeply in
  • love with his cousin, Susan, who had married a rather careless husband
  • named Douglas; both she and Douglas were dead now, but he maintained a
  • touching affection for her two lively rather than satisfying sons. He
  • called them his nephews, and by the continuous attrition of affection he
  • had become their recognized uncle. He was glad when they came to him in
  • their scrapes, and he liked to be seen about with them in public places.
  • They regarded him with considerable confidence and respect and an
  • affection that they sometimes blamed themselves for as not quite warm
  • enough for his merits. But there is a kind of injustice about affection.
  • He was really gratified when he got a wire from the less discreditable
  • of these two bright young relations, saying, “Sorely in need of your
  • advice. Hope to bring difficulties to you to-day at twelve.”
  • He concluded very naturally that the boy had come to some crisis in his
  • unfortunate entanglement with Madeleine Philips, and he was flattered by
  • the trustfulness that brought the matter to him. He resolved to be
  • delicate but wily, honourable, strictly honourable, but steadily,
  • patiently separative. He paced his spacious study with his usual
  • morning’s work neglected, and rehearsed little sentences in his mind
  • that might be effective in the approaching interview. There would
  • probably be emotion. He would pat the lad on his shoulder and be himself
  • a little emotional. “I understand, my boy,” he would say, “I understand.
  • “Don’t forget, my boy, that I’ve been a young man too.”
  • He would be emotional, he would be sympathetic, but also he must be a
  • man of the world. “Sort of thing that won’t do, you know, my boy; sort
  • of thing that people will _not_ stand.... A soldier’s wife has to be a
  • soldier’s wife and nothing else.... Your business is to serve the king,
  • not—not some celebrity. Lovely, no doubt. I don’t deny the charm of
  • her—but on the hoardings, my boy.... Now don’t you think—don’t you
  • _think_?—there’s some nice pure girl somewhere, sweet as violets, new as
  • the dawn, and ready to be _yours_; a girl, I mean, a maiden fancy free,
  • not—how shall I put it?—a woman of the world. Wonderful, I admit—but
  • seasoned. Public. My dear, dear boy, I knew your mother when she was a
  • girl, a sweet pure girl—a thing of dewy freshness. Ah! Well I remember
  • her! All these years, my boy—Nothing. It’s difficult....”
  • Tears stood in his brave old blue eyes as he elaborated such phrases. He
  • went up and down mumbling them through the defective teeth and the long
  • moustache and waving an eloquent hand.
  • § 2
  • When Lord Chickney’s thoughts had once started in any direction it was
  • difficult to turn them aside. No doubt that concealed and repudiated
  • deafness helped his natural perplexity of mind. Truth comes to some of
  • us as a still small voice, but Lord Chickney needed shouting and prods.
  • And Douglas did not get to him until he was finishing lunch. Moreover,
  • it was the weakness of Captain Douglas to talk in jerky fragments and
  • undertones, rather than clearly and fully in the American fashion. “Tell
  • me all about it, my boy,” said Lord Chickney. “Tell me all about it.
  • Don’t apologize for your clothes. I understand. Motor bicycle and just
  • come up. But have you had any lunch, Eric?”
  • “Alan, uncle,—not Eric. My brother is Eric.”
  • “Well, I called him Alan. Tell me all about it. Tell me what has
  • happened. What are you thinking of doing? Just put the positions before
  • me. To tell you the truth I’ve been worrying over this business for some
  • time.”
  • “Didn’t know you’d heard of it, uncle. He can’t have talked about it
  • already. Anyhow,—you see all the awkwardness of the situation. They say
  • the old chap’s a thundering spiteful old devil when he’s roused—and
  • there’s no doubt he was roused.... Tremendously....”
  • Lord Chickney was not listening very attentively. Indeed he was also
  • talking. “Not clear to me there was another man in it,” he was saying.
  • “That makes it more complicated, my boy, makes the row acuter. Old
  • fellow, eh? Who?”
  • They came to a pause at the same moment.
  • “You speak so indistinctly,” complained Lord Chickney. “_Who_ did you
  • say?”
  • “I thought you understood. Lord Moggeridge.”
  • “Lord—! Lord Moggeridge! My dear Boy! But how?”
  • “I thought you understood, uncle.”
  • “He doesn’t want to marry her! Tut! Never! Why, the man must be sixty if
  • he’s a day....”
  • Captain Douglas regarded his distinguished uncle for a moment with
  • distressed eyes. Then he came nearer, raised his voice and spoke more
  • deliberately.
  • “I don’t know whether you quite understand, uncle. I am talking about
  • this affair at Shonts last week-end.”
  • “My dear boy, there’s no need for you to shout. If only you don’t mumble
  • and clip your words—and turn head over heels with your ideas. Just tell
  • me about it plainly. Who is Shonts? One of those Liberal peers? I seem
  • to have heard the name....”
  • “Shonts, uncle, is the house the Laxtons have; you know,—Lucy.”
  • “Little Lucy! I remember her. Curls all down her back. Married
  • the milkman. But how does _she_ come in, Alan? The story’s
  • getting—complicated. But that’s the worst of these infernal
  • affairs,—they always do get complicated. Tangled skeins—
  • “‘Oh what a tangled web we weave,
  • When first we venture to deceive.’
  • “And now, like a sensible man, you want to get out of it.”
  • Captain Douglas was bright pink with the effort to control himself and
  • keep perfectly plain and straightforward. His hair had become like tow
  • and little beads of perspiration stood upon his forehead.
  • “I spent last week-end at Shonts,” he said. “Lord Moggeridge, also
  • there, week-ending. Got it into his head that I was pulling his leg.”
  • “Naturally, my boy, if he goes philandering. At his time of life. What
  • else can he expect?”
  • “It wasn’t philandering.”
  • “Fine distinctions. Fine distinctions. Go on—anyhow.”
  • “He got it into his head that I was playing practical jokes upon him.
  • Confused me with Eric. It led to a rather first-class row. I had to get
  • out of the house. Nothing else to do. He brought all sorts of
  • accusations—”
  • Captain Douglas stopped short. His uncle was no longer attending to him.
  • They had drifted to the window of the study and the general was staring
  • with an excitement and intelligence that grew visibly at the spectacle
  • of Bealby and the trailer outside. For Bealby had been left in the
  • trailer, and he was sitting as good as gold waiting for the next step in
  • his vindication from the dark charge of burglary. He was very
  • travel-worn and the trailer was time-worn as well as travel-worn, and
  • both contrasted with the efficient neatness and newness of the motor
  • bicycle in front. The contrast had attracted the attention of a tall
  • policeman who was standing in a state of elucidatory meditation
  • regarding Bealby. Bealby was not regarding the policeman. He had the
  • utmost confidence in Captain Douglas, he felt sure that he would
  • presently be purged of all the horror of that dead old man and of the
  • brief unpremeditated plunge into crime, but still for the present at any
  • rate he did not feel equal to staring a policeman out of countenance....
  • From the window the policeman very largely obscured Bealby....
  • Whenever hearts are simple there lurks romance. Age cannot wither nor
  • custom stale her infinite diversity. Suddenly out of your low kindly
  • diplomacies, your sane man-of-the-world intentions, leaps the
  • imagination like a rocket, flying from such safe securities bang into
  • the sky. So it happened to the old general. He became deaf to everything
  • but the appearances before him. The world was jewelled with dazzling and
  • delightful possibilities. His face was lit by a glow of genuine romantic
  • excitement. He grasped his nephew’s arm. He pointed. His grizzled cheeks
  • flushed.
  • “That isn’t,” he asked with something verging upon admiration in his
  • voice and manner, “a Certain Lady in disguise?”
  • § 3
  • It became clear to Captain Douglas that if ever he was to get to Lord
  • Moggeridge that day he must take his uncle firmly in hand. Without even
  • attempting not to appear to shout he cried, “That is a little Boy. That
  • is my Witness. It is Most Important that I should get him to Lord
  • Moggeridge to tell his Story.”
  • “What story?” cried the old commander, pulling at his moustache and
  • still eyeing Bealby suspiciously....
  • It took exactly half an hour to get Lord Chickney from that enquiry to
  • the telephone and even then he was still far from clear about the matter
  • in hand. Captain Douglas got in most of the facts, but he could not
  • eliminate an idea that it all had to do with Madeleine. Whenever he
  • tried to say clearly that she was entirely outside the question, the
  • general patted his shoulder and looked very wise and kind and said, “My
  • dear Boy, I quite understand; I _quite_ understand. Never mention a
  • lady. _No._”
  • So they started at last rather foggily—so far as things of the mind
  • went, though the sun that day was brilliant—and because of engine
  • trouble in Port Street the general’s hansom reached Tenby Little Street
  • first and he got in a good five minutes preparing the Lord Chancellor
  • tactfully and carefully before the bicycle and its trailer came upon the
  • scene....
  • § 4
  • Candler had been packing that morning with unusual solicitude for a
  • week-end at Tulliver Abbey. His master had returned from the catastrophe
  • of Shonts, fatigued and visibly aged and extraordinarily cross, and
  • Candler looked to Tulliver Abbey to restore him to his former self.
  • Nothing must be forgotten; there must be no little hitches, everything
  • from first to last must go on oiled wheels, or it was clear his Lordship
  • might develop a desperate hostility to these excursions, excursions
  • which Candler found singularly refreshing and entertaining during the
  • stresses of the session. Tulliver Abbey was as good a house as Shonts
  • was bad; Lady Checksammington ruled with the softness of velvet and the
  • strength of steel over a household of admirably efficient domestics, and
  • there would be the best of people there, Mr. Evesham perhaps, the
  • Loopers, Lady Privet, Andreas Doria and Mr. Pernambuco, great silken
  • mellow personages and diamond-like individualities, amidst whom Lord
  • Moggeridge’s mind would be restfully active and his comfort quite
  • secure. And as far as possible Candler wanted to get the books and
  • papers his master needed into the trunk or the small valise. That habit
  • of catching up everything at the last moment and putting it under his
  • arm and the consequent need for alert picking up, meant friction and
  • nervous wear and tear for both master and man.
  • Lord Moggeridge rose at half-past ten—he had been kept late overnight by
  • a heated discussion at the Aristotelian—and breakfasted lightly upon a
  • chop and coffee. Then something ruffled him; something that came with
  • the letters. Candler could not quite make out what it was, but he
  • suspected another pamphlet by Dr. Schiller. It could not be the chop,
  • because Lord Moggeridge was always wonderfully successful with chops.
  • Candler looked through the envelopes and letters afterwards and found
  • nothing diagnostic, and then he observed a copy of _Mind_ torn across
  • and lying in the waste-paper basket.
  • “When I went out of the room,” said Candler, discreetly examining this.
  • “Very likely it’s that there Schiller after all.”
  • But in this Candler was mistaken. What had disturbed the Lord Chancellor
  • was a coarsely disrespectful article on the Absolute by a Cambridge
  • Rhodes scholar, written in that flighty facetious strain that spreads
  • now like a pestilence over modern philosophical discussion. “Does the
  • Absolute, on Lord Moggeridge’s own showing, mean anything more than an
  • eloquent oiliness uniformly distributed through space?” and so on.
  • Pretty bad!
  • Lord Moggeridge early in life had deliberately acquired a quite
  • exceptional power of mental self-control. He took his perturbed mind now
  • and threw it forcibly into the consideration of a case upon which he had
  • reserved judgment. He was to catch the 3.35 at Paddington, and at two he
  • was smoking a cigar after a temperate lunch and reading over the notes
  • of this judgment. It was then that the telephone bell became audible,
  • and Candler came in to inform him that Lord Chickney was anxious to see
  • him at once upon a matter of some slight importance.
  • “Slight importance?” asked Lord Moggeridge.
  • “Some slight importance, my lord.”
  • “Some? Slight?”
  • “’Is Lordship, my lord, mumbles rather now ’is back teeth ’ave gone,”
  • said Candler, “but so I understand ’im.”
  • “These apologetic assertive phrases annoy me, Candler,” said Lord
  • Moggeridge over his shoulder. “You see,” he turned round and spoke very
  • clearly, “either the matter is of importance or it is not of importance.
  • A thing must either be or not be. I wish you would manage—when you get
  • messages on the telephone—.... But I suppose that is asking too much....
  • Will you explain to him, Candler, when we start, and—ask him,
  • Candler—ask him what sort of matter it is.”
  • Candler returned after some parleying.
  • “So far as I can make ’is Lordship out, my lord, ’e says ’e wants to set
  • you right about something, my lord. He says something about a _little_
  • misapprehension.”
  • “These diminutives, Candler, kill sense. Does he say what sort—what
  • sort—of _little_ misapprehension?”
  • “He says something—I’m sorry, my lord, but it’s about Shonts, me lord.”
  • “Then I don’t want to hear about it,” said Lord Moggeridge.
  • There was a pause. The Lord Chancellor resumed his reading with a
  • deliberate obviousness; the butler hovered.
  • “I’m sorry, my lord, but I can’t think exactly what I ought to say to
  • ’is lordship, my lord.”
  • “Tell him—tell him that I do not wish to hear anything more about Shonts
  • for ever. Simply.”
  • Candler hesitated and went out, shutting the door carefully lest any
  • fragment of his halting rendering of this message to Lord Chickney
  • should reach his master’s ears.
  • Lord Moggeridge’s powers of mental control were, I say, very great—He
  • could dismiss subjects from his mind absolutely. In a few instants he
  • had completely forgotten Shonts and was making notes with a silver-cased
  • pencil on the margins of his draft judgment.
  • § 5
  • He became aware that Candler had returned.
  • “’Is lordship, Lord Chickney, my lord, is very persistent, my lord. ’E’s
  • rung up twice. ’E says now that ’e makes a personal matter of it. Come
  • what may, ’e says, ’e wishes to speak for two minutes to your lordship.
  • Over the telephone, my lord, ’e vouchsafes no further information.”
  • Lord Moggeridge meditated over the end of his third after lunch cigar.
  • His man watched the end of his left eyebrow as an engineer might watch a
  • steam gauge. There were no signs of an explosion. “He must come,
  • Candler,” his lordship said at last....
  • “Oh, Candler!”
  • “My lord?”
  • “Put the bags and things in a conspicuous position in the hall, Candler.
  • Change yourself, and see that you look thoroughly like trains. And in
  • fact have everything ready, _prominently_ ready, Candler.”
  • Then once more Lord Moggeridge concentrated his mind.
  • § 6
  • To him there presently entered Lord Chickney.
  • Lord Chickney had been twice round the world and he had seen many
  • strange and dusky peoples and many remarkable customs and peculiar
  • prejudices, which he had never failed to despise, but he had never
  • completely shaken off the county family ideas in which he had been
  • brought up. He believed that there was an incurable difference in spirit
  • between quite good people like himself and men from down below like
  • Moggeridge, who was the son of an Exeter chorister. He believed that
  • these men from nowhere always cherished the profoundest respect for the
  • real thing like himself, that they were greedy for association and
  • gratified by notice, and so for the life of him he could not approach
  • Lord Moggeridge without a faint sense of condescension. He saluted him
  • as “my _dear_ Lord Moggeridge,” wrung his hand with effusion, and asked
  • him kind, almost district-visiting, questions about his younger brother
  • and the aspect of his house. “And you are just off, I see, for a
  • week-end.”
  • These amenities the Lord Chancellor acknowledged by faint gruntings and
  • an almost imperceptible movement of his eyebrows. “There was a matter,”
  • he said, “some _little_ matter, on which you want to consult me?”
  • “Well,” said Lord Chickney, and rubbed his chin. “_Yes._ Yes, there
  • _was_ a little matter, a little trouble—”
  • “Of an urgent nature.”
  • “Yes. Yes. Exactly. Just a little complicated, you know, not quite
  • simple.” The dear old soldier’s manner became almost seductive. “One of
  • these difficult little affairs, where one has to remember that one is a
  • man of the world, you know. A little complication about a lady, known to
  • you both. But one must make concessions, one must understand. The boy
  • has a witness. Things are not as you supposed them to be.”
  • Lord Moggeridge had a clean conscience about ladies; he drew out his
  • watch and looked at it—aggressively. He kept it in his hand during his
  • subsequent remarks.
  • “I must confess,” he declared, “I have not the remotest idea.... If you
  • will be so good as to be—elementary. What _is_ it all about?”
  • “You see, I knew the lad’s mother,” said Lord Chickney. “In fact—” He
  • became insanely confidential—“Under happier circumstances—don’t
  • misunderstand me, Moggeridge; I mean no evil—but he might have been my
  • son. I feel for him like a son....”
  • § 7
  • When presently Captain Douglas, a little heated from his engine trouble,
  • came into the room—he had left Bealby with Candler in the hall—it was
  • instantly manifest to him that the work of preparation had been
  • inadequately performed.
  • “One minute more, my dear Alan,” cried Lord Chickney.
  • Lord Moggeridge with eyebrows waving and watch in hand was of a
  • different opinion. He addressed himself to Captain Douglas.
  • “There _isn’t_ a minute more,” he said. “What is all this—this
  • philoprogenitive rigmarole about? Why have you come to me? My cab is
  • outside _now_. All this about ladies and witnesses;—what _is_ it?”
  • “Perfectly simple, my lord! You imagine that I played practical jokes
  • upon you at Shonts. I didn’t. I have a witness. The attack upon you
  • downstairs, the noise in your room—”
  • “Have I any guarantee—?”
  • “It’s the steward’s boy from Shonts. Your man outside knows him. Saw him
  • in the steward’s room. He made the trouble for you—and me, and then he
  • ran away. Just caught him. Not exchanged thirty words with him. Half a
  • dozen questions. Settle everything. Then you’ll know—nothing for you but
  • the utmost respect.”
  • Lord Moggeridge pressed his lips together and resisted conviction.
  • “In consideration,” interpolated Lord Chickney, “feelings of an old
  • fellow. Old soldier. Boy means no harm.”
  • With the rudeness of one sorely tried the Lord Chancellor thrust the old
  • general aside. “Oh!” he said, “Oh!” and then to Captain Douglas. “One
  • minute. Where’s your witness?...”
  • The Captain opened a door. Bealby found himself bundled into the
  • presence of two celebrated men.
  • “Tell him,” said Captain Douglas. “And look sharp about it.”
  • “Tell me plainly,” cried the Lord Chancellor, “and be—_quick_.”
  • He put such a point on “quick” that it made Bealby jump.
  • “Tell him,” said the general more gently. “Don’t be afraid.”
  • “Well,” began Bealby after one accumulating pause, “it was ’im told me
  • to do it. ’E said you go in there—”
  • The Captain would have interrupted but the Lord Chancellor restrained
  • him by a magnificent gesture of the hand holding the watch.
  • “He told you to do it!” he said. “I knew he did. Now listen! He told you
  • practically to go in and do anything you could.”
  • “Yessir.” Woe took possession of Bealby. “I didn’t do any ’arm to the
  • ole gentleman.”
  • “But _who_ told you?” cried the Captain. “_Who_ told you?”
  • Lord Moggeridge annihilated him with arm and eyebrows. He held Bealby
  • fascinated by a pointing finger.
  • “Don’t do more than answer the questions. I have thirty seconds more. He
  • told you to go in. He _made_ you go in. At the earliest possible
  • opportunity you got away?”
  • “I jest nipped out—”
  • “Enough! And now, sir, how dare you come here without even a plausible
  • lie? How dare you after your intolerable tomfoolery at Shonts confront
  • me again with fresh tomfoolery? How dare you drag in your gallant and
  • venerable uncle in this last preposterous—I suppose you would call
  • it—_lark_! I suppose you had prepared that little wretch with some fine
  • story. Little you know of False Witness! At the first question, he
  • breaks down! He does not even begin his lie. He at least knows the
  • difference between my standards and yours. Candler! Candler!”
  • Candler appeared.
  • “These—these _gentlemen_ are going. Is everything ready?”
  • “The cab is at the door, m’lord. The usual cab.”
  • Captain Douglas made one last desperate effort. “Sir!” he said. “My
  • lord—”
  • The Lord Chancellor turned upon him with a face that he sought to keep
  • calm, though the eyebrows waved and streamed like black smoke in a gale.
  • “Captain Douglas,” he said, “you are probably not aware of the demands
  • upon the time and patience of a public servant in such a position as
  • mine. You see the world no doubt as a vastly entertaining fabric upon
  • which you can embroider your—your facetious arrangements. Well, it is
  • not so. It is real. It is earnest. You may sneer at the simplicity of an
  • old man, but what I tell you of life is true. Comic effect is not,
  • believe me, its goal. And you, sir, you, sir, you impress me as an
  • intolerably foolish, flippant and unnecessary young man. Flippant.
  • Unnecessary. Foolish.”
  • As he said these words Candler approached him with a dust coat of a
  • peculiar fineness and dignity, and he uttered the last words over his
  • protruded chest while Candler assisted his arms into his sleeves.
  • “My lord,” said Captain Douglas again, but his resolution was deserting
  • him.
  • “_No_,” said the Lord Chancellor, leaning forward in a minatory manner
  • while Candler pulled down the tail of his jacket and adjusted the collar
  • of his overcoat.
  • “Uncle,” said Captain Douglas.
  • “_No_,” said the general, with the curt decision of a soldier, and
  • turned exactly ninety degrees away from him. “You little know how you
  • have hurt me, Alan! You little know. I couldn’t have imagined it. The
  • Douglas strain! False Witness—and insult. I am sorry, my dear
  • Moggeridge, beyond measure.”
  • “I quite understand—you are as much a victim as myself. Quite. A more
  • foolish attempt—I am sorry to be in this hurry—”
  • “Oh! You damned little fool,” said the Captain, and advanced a step
  • towards the perplexed and shrinking Bealby. “You imbecile little
  • trickster! What do you mean by it?”
  • “I didn’t mean anything—!”
  • Then suddenly the thought of Madeleine, sweet and overpowering, came
  • into the head of this distraught young man. He had risked losing her, he
  • had slighted and insulted her, and here he was—entangled. Here he was in
  • a position of nearly inconceivable foolishness, about to assault a dirty
  • and silly little boy in the presence of the Lord Chancellor and Uncle
  • Chickney. The world, he felt, was lost, and not well lost. And she was
  • lost too. Even now while he pursued these follies she might be consoling
  • her wounded pride....
  • He perceived that love is the supreme thing in life. He perceived that
  • he who divides his purposes scatters his life to the four winds of
  • heaven. A vehement resolve to cut the whole of this Bealby business
  • pounced upon him. In that moment he ceased to care for reputation, for
  • appearances, for the resentment of Lord Moggeridge or the good
  • intentions of Uncle Chickney.
  • He turned, he rushed out of the room. He escaped by unparalleled
  • gymnastics the worst consequences of an encounter with the Lord
  • Chancellor’s bag which the under-butler had placed rather tactlessly
  • between the doors, crossed the wide and dignified hall, and in another
  • moment had his engine going and was struggling to mount his machine in
  • the street without. His face expressed an almost apoplectic
  • concentration. He narrowly missed the noses of a pair of horses in the
  • carriage of Lady Beach Mandarin, made an extraordinary curve to spare a
  • fishmonger’s tricycle, shaved the front and completely destroyed the
  • gesture of that eminent actor manager, Mr. Pomegranate, who was crossing
  • the road in his usual inadvertent fashion, and then he was popping and
  • throbbing and banging round the corner and on his way back to the lovely
  • and irresistible woman who was exerting so disastrous an influence upon
  • his career....
  • § 8
  • The Captain fled from London in the utmost fury and to the general
  • danger of the public. His heart was full of wicked blasphemies,
  • shoutings and self-reproaches, but outwardly he seemed only pinkly
  • intent. And as he crossed an open breezy common and passed by a
  • milestone bearing this inscription, “To London Thirteen Miles,” his hind
  • tyre burst conclusively with a massive report....
  • § 9
  • In every life there are crucial moments, turning points, and not
  • infrequently it is just such a thing as this, a report, a sudden waking
  • in the night, a flash upon the road to Damascus, that marks and
  • precipitates the accumulating new. Vehemence is not concentration. The
  • headlong violence of the Captain had been no expression of a
  • single-minded purpose, of a soul all gathered together to an end. Far
  • less a pursuit had it been than a flight, a flight from his own
  • dissensions. And now—now he was held.
  • After he had attempted a few plausible repairs and found the tyre
  • obdurate, after he had addressed ill-chosen remonstrances to some
  • unnamed hearer, after he had walked some way along the road and back in
  • an indecision about repair shops in some neighbouring town, the last
  • dregs of his resistance were spent. He perceived that he was in the
  • presence of a Lesson. He sat down by the roadside, some twenty feet from
  • the disabled motor bicycle and, impotent for further effort, frankly
  • admitted himself overtaken. He had not reckoned with punctures.
  • The pursuing questions came clambering upon him and would no longer be
  • denied; who he was and what he was and how he was, and the meaning of
  • this Rare Bate he had been in, and all those deep questions that are so
  • systematically neglected in the haste and excitement of modern life.
  • In short, for the first time in many headlong days he asked himself
  • simply and plainly what he thought he was up to?
  • Certain things became clear, and so minutely and exactly clear that it
  • was incredible that they had ever for a moment been obscure. Of course
  • Bealby had been a perfectly honest little boy, under some sort of
  • misconception, and of course he ought to have been carefully coached and
  • prepared and rehearsed before he was put before the Lord Chancellor.
  • This was so manifest now that the Captain stared aghast at his own
  • inconceivable negligence. But the mischief was done. Nothing now would
  • ever propitiate Moggeridge, nothing now would ever reconcile Uncle
  • Chickney. That was—settled. But what was not settled was the amazing
  • disorder of his own mind. Why had he been so negligent, what had come
  • over his mind in the last few weeks?
  • And this sudden strange illumination of the Captain’s mind went so far
  • as perceiving that the really important concern for him was not the
  • accidents of Shonts but this epilepsy of his own will. Why now was he
  • rushing back to Madeleine? Why? He did not love her. He knew he did not
  • love her. On the whole, more than anything else he resented her.
  • But he was excited about her, he was so excited that these other
  • muddles, fluctuations, follies, came as a natural consequence from that.
  • Out of this excitement came those wild floods of angry energy that made
  • him career about—
  • “Like some damned Cracker,” said the Captain.
  • “For instance,” he asked himself, “_now!_ what am I going for?
  • “If I go back she’ll probably behave like an offended Queen. Doesn’t
  • seem to understand anything that does not focus on herself. Wants a sort
  • of Limelight Lover....
  • “She _relies_ upon exciting me!
  • “She relies upon exciting everyone!—she’s just a woman specialized for
  • excitement.”
  • And after meditating through a profound minute upon this judgment, the
  • Captain pronounced these two epoch-making words: “_I won’t!_”
  • § 10
  • The Captain’s mind was now in a state of almost violent lucidity.
  • “This sex stuff,” he said; “first I kept it under too tight and now I’ve
  • let it rip too loose.
  • “I’ve been just a distracted fool, with my head swimming with meetings
  • and embraces and—frills.”
  • He produced some long impending generalizations.
  • “Not a man’s work, this Lover business. Dancing about in a world of
  • petticoats and powder puffs and attentions and jealousies. Rotten game.
  • Played off against some other man....
  • “I’ll be hanged if I am....
  • “Have to put women in their places....
  • “Make a hash of everything if we don’t....”
  • Then for a time the Captain meditated in silence and chewed his knuckle.
  • His face darkened to a scowl. He swore as though some thought twisted
  • and tormented him. “Let some other man get her! Think of her with some
  • other man.”
  • “I don’t care,” he said, when obviously he did.
  • “There’s other women in the world.
  • “A man—a man mustn’t care for _that_....
  • “It’s this or that,” said the Captain, “anyhow....”
  • § 11
  • Suddenly the Captain’s mind was made up and done.
  • He arose to his feet and his face was firm and tranquil and now nearer
  • pallor than pink. He left his bicycle and trailer by the wayside even as
  • Christian left his burden. He asked a passing nurse-girl the way to the
  • nearest railway station, and thither he went. Incidentally, and because
  • the opportunity offered, he called in upon a cyclist’s repair shop and
  • committed his abandoned machinery to its keeping. He went straight to
  • London, changed at his flat, dined at his club, and caught the night
  • train for France—for France and whatever was left of the grand
  • manœuvres.
  • He wrote a letter to Madeleine from the Est train next day, using their
  • customary endearments, avoiding any discussion of their relations and
  • describing the scenery of the Seine valley and the characteristics of
  • Rouen in a few vivid and masterly phrases.
  • “If she’s worth having, she’ll understand,” said the Captain, but he
  • knew perfectly well she would not understand.
  • Mrs. Geedge noted this letter among the others, and afterwards she was
  • much exercised by Madeleine’s behaviour. For suddenly that lady became
  • extraordinarily gay and joyous in her bearing, singing snatches of song
  • and bubbling over with suggestions for larks and picnics and wild
  • excursions. She patted Mr. Geedge on the shoulder and ran her arm
  • through the arm of Professor Bowles. Both gentlemen received these
  • familiarities with a gawky coyness that Mrs. Geedge found contemptible.
  • And moreover Madeleine drew several shy strangers into their circle. She
  • invited the management to a happy participation.
  • Her great idea was a moonlight picnic. “We’ll have a great camp-fire and
  • afterwards we’ll dance—this very night.”
  • “But wouldn’t it be better to-morrow?”
  • “To-night!”
  • “To-morrow perhaps Captain Douglas may be back again. And he’s so good
  • at all these things.”
  • Mrs. Geedge knew better because she had seen the French stamp on the
  • letter, but she meant to get to the bottom of this business, and thus it
  • was she said this.
  • “I’ve sent him back to his soldiering,” said Madeleine serenely. “He has
  • better things to do.”
  • § 12
  • For some moments after the unceremonious departure of Captain Douglas
  • from the presence of Lord Moggeridge, it did not occur to anyone, it did
  • not occur even to Bealby, that the Captain had left his witness behind
  • him. The general and the Lord Chancellor moved into the hall, and
  • Bealby, under the sway of a swift compelling gesture from Candler,
  • followed modestly. The same current swept them all out into the portico,
  • and while the under-butler whistled up a hansom for the General, the
  • Lord Chancellor, with a dignity that was at once polite and rapid, and
  • Candler gravely protective and little reproving, departed. Bealby,
  • slowly apprehending their desertion, regarded the world of London with
  • perplexity and dismay. Candler had gone. The last of the gentlemen was
  • going. The under-butler, Bealby felt, was no friend. Under-butlers never
  • are.
  • Lord Chickney in the very act of entering his cab had his coat-tail
  • tugged. He looked enquiringly.
  • “Please, sir, there’s me,” said Bealby.
  • Lord Chickney reflected. “Well?” he said.
  • The spirit of Bealby was now greatly abased. His face and voice betrayed
  • him on the verge of tears. “I want to go ’ome to Shonts, sir.”
  • “Well, my boy, go ’ome—go home, I mean, to Shonts.”
  • “’E’s gone, sir,” said Bealby....
  • Lord Chickney was a good-hearted man, and he knew that a certain public
  • kindliness and disregard of appearances looks far better and is
  • infinitely more popular than a punctilious dignity. He took Bealby to
  • Waterloo in his hansom, got him a third class ticket to Chelsome, tipped
  • a porter to see him safely into his train and dismissed him in the most
  • fatherly manner.
  • § 13
  • It was well after tea-time, Bealby felt, as he came once more within the
  • boundaries of the Shonts estate.
  • It was a wiser and a graver Bealby who returned from this week of
  • miscellaneous adventure. He did not clearly understand all that had
  • happened to him; in particular he was puzzled by the extreme annoyance
  • and sudden departure of Captain Douglas from the presence of Lord
  • Moggeridge; but his general impression was that he had been in great
  • peril of dire punishment and that he had been rather hastily and
  • ignominiously reprieved. The nice old gentleman with the long grey
  • moustaches had dismissed him to the train at last with a quality of
  • benediction. But Bealby understood now better than he had done before
  • that adventures do not always turn out well for the boy hero, and that
  • the social system has a number of dangerous and disagreeable holes at
  • the bottom. He had reached the beginnings of wisdom. He was glad he had
  • got away from the tramp and still gladder that he had got away from
  • Crayminster; he was sorry that he would never see the beautiful lady
  • again, and perplexed and perplexed. And also he was interested in the
  • probability of his mother having toast for tea....
  • It must, he felt, be a long time after tea-time, quite late....
  • He had weighed the advisability of returning quietly to his windowless
  • bedroom under the stairs, putting on his little green apron and emerging
  • with a dutiful sang-froid as if nothing had happened, on the one hand,
  • or of going to the gardens on the other. But tea—with eatables—seemed
  • more probable at the gardens....
  • He was deflected from the direct route across the park by a long deep
  • trench, that someone had made and abandoned since the previous Sunday
  • morning. He wondered what it was for. It was certainly very ugly. And as
  • he came out by the trees and got the full effect of the façade, he
  • detected a strangely bandaged quality about Shonts. It was as if Shonts
  • had recently been in a fight and got a black eye. Then he saw the reason
  • for this; one tower was swathed in scaffolding. He wondered what could
  • have happened to the tower. Then his own troubles resumed their sway.
  • He was so fortunate as not to meet his father in the gardens, and he
  • entered the house so meekly that his mother did not look up from the
  • cashmere she was sewing. She was sitting at the table sewing some newly
  • dyed black cashmere.
  • He was astonished at her extreme pallor and the drooping resignation of
  • her pose.
  • “Mother!” he said, and she looked up convulsively and stared, stared
  • with bright round astonished eyes.
  • “I’m sorry, mother, I’aven’t been quite a good steward’s-room boy,
  • mother. If I could ’ave another go, mother....”
  • He halted for a moment, astonished that she said nothing, but only sat
  • with that strange expression and opened and shut her mouth.
  • “Reely—I’d _try_, mother....”
  • Printed in the United States of America.
  • ------------------------------------------------------------------------
  • TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES
  • 1. P. 145, changed “extremely riding breeches” to “extreme riding
  • breeches”.
  • 2. P. 180, changed “things he was saying” to “things she was saying”.
  • 3. Some ‘§’ subheading numbers are duplicated.
  • 4. Silently corrected typographical errors and variations in spelling.
  • 5. Retained anachronistic, non-standard, and uncertain spellings as
  • printed.
  • 6. Enclosed italics font in _underscores_.
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Bealby; A Holiday, by H. G. Wells
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK BEALBY; A HOLIDAY ***
  • ***** This file should be named 59769-0.txt or 59769-0.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/5/9/7/6/59769/
  • Produced by Richard Tonsing and the Online Distributed
  • Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net (This file was
  • produced from images generously made available by The
  • Internet Archive)
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
  • be renamed.
  • Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
  • law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
  • so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
  • States without permission and without paying copyright
  • royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
  • of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
  • concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
  • and may not be used if you charge for the eBooks, unless you receive
  • specific permission. If you do not charge anything for copies of this
  • eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You may use this eBook
  • for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works, reports,
  • performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
  • away--you may do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks
  • not protected by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the
  • trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
  • START: FULL LICENSE
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
  • Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
  • www.gutenberg.org/license.
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
  • destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
  • possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
  • Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
  • by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
  • person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
  • 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
  • agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
  • Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
  • of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
  • works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
  • States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
  • United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
  • claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
  • displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
  • all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
  • that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
  • free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
  • comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
  • same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
  • you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
  • in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
  • check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
  • agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
  • distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
  • other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
  • representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
  • country outside the United States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
  • immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
  • prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
  • on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
  • performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
  • most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
  • restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
  • under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
  • eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
  • United States, you'll have to check the laws of the country where you
  • are located before using this ebook.
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
  • derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
  • contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
  • copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
  • the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
  • redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
  • either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
  • obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
  • additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
  • will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
  • posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
  • beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
  • any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
  • to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
  • other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
  • version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site
  • (www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
  • to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
  • of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
  • Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
  • full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • provided that
  • * You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
  • to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
  • agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
  • within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
  • legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
  • payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
  • Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation."
  • * You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
  • copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
  • all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • works.
  • * You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
  • any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
  • receipt of the work.
  • * You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
  • are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
  • from both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and The
  • Project Gutenberg Trademark LLC, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
  • contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
  • or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
  • intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
  • other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
  • cannot be read by your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
  • with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
  • with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
  • lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
  • or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
  • opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
  • the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
  • without further opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
  • OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
  • LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
  • damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
  • violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
  • agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
  • limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
  • unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
  • remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
  • accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
  • production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
  • including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
  • the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
  • or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
  • additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
  • Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
  • computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
  • exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
  • from people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
  • generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
  • Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
  • www.gutenberg.org Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
  • U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is in Fairbanks, Alaska, with the
  • mailing address: PO Box 750175, Fairbanks, AK 99775, but its
  • volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
  • locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt
  • Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up to
  • date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site and
  • official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
  • DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
  • state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
  • donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
  • freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
  • distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
  • volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
  • the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
  • necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
  • edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search
  • facility: www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.